Selected quad for the lemma: heaven_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
heaven_n angel_n cast_v dragon_n 2,416 5 11.4144 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A58336 A divine looking-glass, or, The third and last testament of Our Lord Jesus Christ whose personal residence is seated on his throne of eternal glory in another world : being the commission of the spirit, agreeing with, and explaining of the two former commissions of the law and Gospel, differing only in point of worship : set forth for the tryal of all sorts of supposed spiritual lights in the world, until the ever-lasting true Jesus, the onely high and mighty God, pesonally appear in the air with his saints and angels / by John Reeve and Lodowick Muggleton ... Reeve, John, 1608-1658.; Muggleton, Lodowick, 1609-1698. 1661 (1661) Wing R676; ESTC R35141 178,978 220

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

39_o though_o the_o woman_n eve_n through_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n be_v first_o guilty_a of_o the_o transgression_n of_o lust_n and_o so_o tempt_v her_o innocent_a husband_n to_o lie_v with_o she_o to_o cover_v her_o folly_n if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a yet_o because_o her_o soul_n be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o its_o creation_n as_o adam_n be_v you_o may_v know_v that_o that_o carnal_a desire_n in_o she_o towards_o her_o husband_n proceed_v not_o from_o her_o own_o divine_a purity_n but_o from_o the_o rational_a nature_n of_o the_o unclean_a serpent_n within_o she_o as_o i_o shall_v clear_o demonstrate_v when_o i_o come_v to_o trout_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o her_o be_v overcome_v by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o that_o angelical_a serpent_n 40_o thus_o though_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v both_o natural_a and_o so_o be_v capable_a of_o luft_n to_o bring_v forth_o generation_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o secret_a wisdom_n of_o god_n see_v it_o most_o fit_a that_o neither_o adam_n nor_o eve_n shall_v be_v first_o capable_a to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o desire_v after_o carnal_a copulation_n from_o their_o own_o divine_a spirit_n but_o from_o that_o serpentine_a unclean_a spirit_n that_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n of_o eve_n 41_o so_o much_o at_o present_a why_o god_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n according_a to_o our_o likeness_n and_o what_o that_o image_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n chap._n xxxi_o 1_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n 2_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n 3_o how_o sin_n come_v into_o man_n nature_n 4_o no_o angel_n cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n but_o that_o one_o which_o deceive_v eve_n 5_o no_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o two_o seed_n 6_o no_o speech_n can_v proceed_v from_o any_o but_o from_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v write_v of_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n and_o of_o he_o manner_n of_o his_o beguile_n of_o innocent_a eve_n 2_o in_o the_o 12_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o the_o great_a dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n call_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n be_v cast_v ou●_n which_o deceive_v all_o the_o world_n he_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o earth_n and_o his_o angel_n be_v cast_v out_o with_o he_o see_v the_o scripture_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o old_a serpent_n dragon_n devil_n and_o his_o angel_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o be_v there_o many_o angel_n cast_v from_o heaven_n into_o the_o earth_n together_o or_o but_o one_o only_a and_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o or_o many_o where_o be_v those_o angel_n now_o become_v 3_o from_o a_o divine_a gift_n receive_v from_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o man_n adam_n cast_v out_o of_o his_o heavenly_a paradise_n of_o create_a purity_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o all_o his_o generation_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o their_o spiritual_a peace_n with_o he_o 4_o so_o likewise_o there_o be_v but_o one_o angelical_a serpent_n cast_v from_o his_o create_a rational_a purity_n and_o that_o be_v that_o serpent_n devil_n which_o deceive_v eve_n 5_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v cast_v out_o with_o he_o be_v of_o his_o seed_n or_o generation_n through_o his_o union_n with_o the_o entrail_n of_o eve_n as_o i_o shall_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n 6_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n because_o my_o soul_n desire_v your_o perfection_n as_o my_o own_o 7_o therefore_o will_v i_o glad_o have_v you_o possess_v with_o a_o infallible_a understanding_n between_o michael_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o the_o dragon_n and_o his_o angel_n or_o between_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n why_o because_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o two_o distinct_a seed_n son_n or_o generation_n depend_v a_o general_a understanding_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n 8_o wherefore_o in_o the_o 2._o of_o genesis_n you_o shall_v find_v it_o thus_o write_v but_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n thou_o shall_v not_o eat_v of_o it_o for_o in_o the_o day_n that_o thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n 9_o if_o you_o look_v in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n with_o a_o spiritual_a eye_n than_o you_o may_v clear_o see_v what_o that_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n do_v signify_v the_o word_n be_v these_o then_o the_o serpent_n say_v to_o the_o woman_n you_o shall_v not_o die_v at_o all_o but_o god_n do_v know_v that_o when_o you_o shall_v eat_v thereof_o your_o eye_n shall_v be_v open_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v as_o god_n know_v good_a and_o evil_n so_o the_o woman_n see_v that_o the_o tree_n be_v good_a for_o meat_n and_o that_o it_o be_v pleasant_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o a_o tree_n to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a take_v of_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o and_o do_v eat_v and_o give_v also_o to_o her_o husband_n with_o she_o and_o he_o do_v eat_v 10_o my_o elect_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v it_o be_v a_o general_a opinion_n among_o learned_a man_n that_o the_o serpent_n which_o appear_v unto_o eve_n be_v one_o of_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v make_v 11_o and_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o invisible_a spirit_n which_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o speak_v those_o subtle_a speech_n through_o his_o mouth_n 12_o and_o so_o cause_v the_o woman_n to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o a_o natural_a tree_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v forbid_v and_o tempt_v her_o husband_n to_o eat_v of_o that_o fruit_n with_o she_o it_o operate_v that_o venomous_a evil_n in_o they_o and_o all_o mankind_n 13_o behold_v the_o gross_a darkness_n abide_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o perish_a world_n 14_o you_o know_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v general_o express_v in_o natural_a term_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n to_o the_o weak_a comprehension_n of_o sinful_a mortal_n 15_o and_o natural_a wise_a man_n will_v persuade_v man_n to_o understand_v they_o exact_o in_o the_o letter_n because_o they_o measure_v the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o eternity_n by_o their_o rational_a learning_n only_o as_o beforesaid_a 16_o in_o scripture_n record_v you_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o lion_n a_o lamb_n a_o stone_n a_o door_n a_o way_n a_o vine_n a_o green_a tree_n and_o such_o like_a expression_n in_o reference_n unto_o spiritual_a meaning_n 17_o also_o you_o know_v that_o evil_a mind_a man_n be_v sometime_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o devil_n dragon_n viper_n serpent_n fruitless-tree_n and_o such_o like_a according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n the_o baptist_n when_o he_o say_v now_o the_o axe_n be_v lay_v unto_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n every_o tree_n therefore_o that_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n 18_o so_o likewise_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o that_o angelical_a reprobate_n by_o who_o eve_n be_v deceive_v be_v call_v a_o dragon_n a_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n and_o satan_n a_o deceiver_n or_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n and_o such_o like_a name_n suitable_a unto_o his_o curse_a nature_n 19_o but_o the_o very_a truth_n be_v this_o that_o serpent_n that_o tempt_v eve_n be_v that_o angelical_a dragon_n devil_n beforesaid_a which_o the_o lord_n god_n from_o the_o high_a heaven_n cast_v down_o to_o the_o low_a earth_n 20_o and_o it_o be_v his_o seem_a divine_a wisdom_n and_o angelical_a person_n that_o bewitch_v eve_n innocent_o soul_n to_o hearken_v unto_o he_o and_o her_o eye_n to_o dote_v upon_o he_o 21_o for_o you_o know_v that_o eve_n have_v three_o consideration_n in_o she_o before_o she_o be_v overcome_v to_o consent_v unto_o the_o serpent_n language_n 22_o first_o the_o tree_n be_v good_a for_o meat_n second_o it_o be_v pleasant_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o three_o it_o be_v a_o tree_n to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a chap._n xxxii_o 1_o the_o condition_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n in_o their_o fall_n 2_o the_o angel_n call_v a_o serpent_n 3_o he_o be_v more_o comely_a in_o eve_n eye_n than_o adam_n 4_o how_o the_o fall_a angel_n become_v flesh_n 5_o how_o god_n become_v flesh_n before_o i_o write_v of_o the_o three_o secret_n hide_v in_o the_o angelical_a temptation_n i_o shall_v speak_v a_o little_a of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o secret_a wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o his_o choose_a one_o 2_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o in_o the_o divine_a will_n of_o the_o infinite_a majesty_n be_v a_o
that_o of_o adam_n or_o else_o eve_n can_v not_o possible_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o he_o as_o aforesaid_a 7_o also_o his_o body_n be_v spiritual_a though_o his_o nature_n be_v carnal_a there_o be_v no_o let_n to_o hinder_v his_o descend_v into_o her_o womb_n to_o bring_v forth_o the_o creator_n secret_a purpose_n of_o two_o generation_n come_v through_o the_o loin_n of_o one_o woman_n to_o make_v a_o everlasting_a distinction_n between_o the_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o respection_n and_o shame_n of_o rejection_n 8_o though_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n descend_v into_o the_o womb_n of_o eve_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o his_o ascend_a nature_n be_v utter_o lose_v in_o that_o in_o stead_n of_o his_o ascend_a upward_o into_o that_o habitation_n of_o ravish_a glory_n from_o whence_o he_o be_v cast_v he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o and_o of_o that_o god_n and_o his_o mighty_a angel_n as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o know_v they_o in_o the_o least_o 9_o for_o he_o imagine_v his_o serpentine_a subtlety_n to_o be_v the_o only_a wisdom_n then_o in_o be_v and_o this_o world_n to_o be_v the_o only_a heaven_n 10_o my_o belove_a brethren_n in_o the_o eternal_a truth_n whatever_o carnal_a mind_a man_n vain_o dream_v of_o a_o general_a redemption_n by_o christ_n as_o sure_a as_o the_o lord_n live_v there_o be_v a_o serpentine_a generation_n of_o curse_a man_n and_o woman_n which_o glory_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o fleshly_a sport_v themselves_o about_o a_o creator_n or_o in_o possess_v of_o a_o perfection_n in_o this_o mortality_n which_o with_o their_o father_n cain_n be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o true_a god_n his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n elect_v angel_n immortal_a personal_a glory_n or_o misery_n or_o any_o spiritual_a thing_n in_o the_o least_o 11_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n throughout_o make_v mention_n of_o two_o distinct_a seed_n son_n or_o generation_n of_o mankind_n 12_o can_v cain_n and_o abel_n both_o therefore_o proceed_v from_o adam_n loin_n or_o be_v of_o his_o beget_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o eve_n 13_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o three_o of_o luke_n and_o the_o last_o verse_n concern_v christ_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o enos_n the_o son_n of_o seth_n the_o son_n of_o adam_n the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o christ_n jesus_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o very_a son_n of_o adam_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n can_v any_o sober_a man_n possible_o think_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o relation_n of_o spirit_n or_o flesh_n between_o christ_n and_o cain_n 14_o or_o that_o the_o everliving_a god_n upon_o any_o account_n whatsoever_o shall_v be_v brother_n unto_o a_o curse_a serpent_n 15_o though_o righteous_a abel_n be_v cain_n brother_n yet_o their_o brotherhood_n come_v by_o the_o mother_n side_n only_o and_o not_o by_o the_o father_n though_o eve_n be_v make_v out_o of_o adam_n side_n 16_o you_o know_v that_o righteous_a abel_n do_v represent_v the_o glorious_a person_n of_o all_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n itself_o who_o be_v that_o holy_a and_o innocent_a lamb_n spiritual_o slay_v from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n in_o abel_n by_o the_o heart_n and_o hand_n of_o murder_a lie_a cain_n 17_o moreover_o be_v not_o this_o answerable_a unto_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o brethren_n you_o know_v their_o brotherhood_n be_v by_o the_o mother_n side_n only_o and_o not_o by_o the_o father_n 18_o thus_o if_o your_o eye_n be_v open_v you_o may_v see_v in_o contrariety_n a_o harmony_n between_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n 19_o again_o because_o of_o the_o great_a opposition_n that_o may_v rise_v up_o against_o this_o glorious_a truth_n through_o the_o exceed_a pride_n and_o unbelief_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o most_o man_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o cite_v a_o few_o scripture_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o john_n you_o may_v find_v it_o thus_o write_v not_o as_o cain_n which_o be_v of_o that_o wicked_a one_o and_o slay_v his_o brother_n in_o the_o 13._o chap._n of_o matthew_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v he_o that_o sow_v the_o good_a seed_n be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o the_o field_n be_v the_o world_n and_o the_o good_a seed_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o tare_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o wicked_a one_o and_o the_o enemy_n that_o sow_v they_o be_v the_o devil_n 20_o moreover_o in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o st._n john_n christ_n jesus_n the_o only_a god_n of_o truth_n speak_v thus_o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o your_o father_n you_o will_v do_v he_o have_v be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n because_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o he_o when_o he_o speak_v a_o lie_n then_o speak_v he_o of_o his_o own_o for_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n thereof_o 21_o my_o spiritual_a and_o rational_a friend_n which_o be_v sober_a be_v not_o cain_n the_o first_o murder_v lie_a man_n that_o ever_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o woman_n see_v no_o true_a christian_n can_v gainsay_v it_o be_v not_o curse_a cain_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o murder_a devil_n and_o father_n of_o lie_v speak_v of_o by_o christ_n aforesaid_a 22_o in_o answer_n unto_o those_o carnal_a jew_n which_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o abraham_n seed_n and_o be_v not_o those_o lustful_a murder_a mind_a jew_n or_o gentile_n which_o our_o lord_n brand_v with_o title_n of_o serpent_n viper_n child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o such_o like_a filthy_a canaanite_n which_v proceed_v out_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o curse_a cain_n that_o old_a serpent_n dragon_n devil_n and_o father_n of_o all_o the_o damn_a in_o this_o world_n and_o not_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o abraham_n though_o they_o may_v proceed_v from_o his_o loin_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n through_o mixture_n of_o seed_n in_o marriage_n the_o son_n of_o god_n see_v the_o daughter_n of_o man_n to_o be_v fair_a and_o they_o take_v of_o they_o to_o be_v their_o wife_n 23_o though_o the_o bless_a israelite_n and_o curse_a canaanite_n be_v mix_v together_o by_o carnal_a copulation_n since_o the_o prince_n of_o devil_n become_v flesh_n yet_o you_o that_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o make_v they_o both_o know_v how_o to_o separate_v they_o for_o all_o their_o close_a union_n and_o to_o call_v they_o by_o name_n answerable_a to_o their_o own_o nature_n 24_o i_o confess_v that_o all_o that_o die_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n shall_v be_v make_v alive_a in_o that_o second_o adam_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n but_o what_o be_v that_o whole_a world_n that_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o find_v again_o in_o the_o second_o adam_n 25_o if_o with_o a_o spiritual_a eye_n you_o shall_v look_v from_o the_o 1._o of_o genes_n unto_o the_o last_o of_o the_o revelation_n than_o you_o may_v clear_o see_v what_o that_o whole_a world_n be_v which_o be_v appoint_v unto_o immortal_a crown_n of_o eternal_a glory_n by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n behold_v be_v they_o not_o call_v a_o choose_a generation_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o redeem_a people_n adopt_a son_n of_o god_n heir_n or_o coheir_n with_o christ_n bless_a child_n or_o the_o lose_a sh●●p_n of_o israel_n and_o such_o like_a 26_o do_v not_o the_o glorious_a creator_n and_o bless_a redeemer_n himself_o make_v a_o clear_a distinction_n between_o two_o world_n or_o generation_n when_o he_o say_v i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o for_o they_o that_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o out_o of_o the_o world_n 27_o can_v you_o that_o be_v sober_a imagine_v or_o think_v that_o there_o be_v any_o spiritual_a salvation_n for_o those_o man_n or_o woman_n which_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n exclude_v in_o his_o petition_n 28_o moreover_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v of_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n or_o the_o devil_n 29_o behold_v you_o redeem_v once_o of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v it_o not_o as_o clear_v as_o light_v itself_o that_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a whole_a world_n according_a to_o that_o say_n than_o all_o israel_n shall_v be_v save_v 30_o a_o redeem_a world_n of_o elect_a lose_a israelite_n and_o a_o unredeemed_a world_n of_o unlost_a cananitish_a reprobate_n that_o be_v never_o true_o lose_v in_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o never_o capable_a of_o be_v find_v in_o christ_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o judas_n where_o it_o be_v thus_o write_v for_o there_o be_v certain_a man_n creep_v in_o which_o be_v of_o old_a ordain_v to_o condemnation_n ungodly_a man_n they_o be_v which_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n
of_o prison_n 8_o who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v in_o the_o deep_a prison_n of_o rage_a darkness_n in_o the_o next_o place_n according_a to_o promise_v i_o shall_v write_v somewhat_o upon_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n by_o st._n john_n because_o that_o error_n of_o christ_n personal_a reign_n a_o thousand_o year_n with_o his_o saint_n on_o this_o earth_n be_v partly_o ground_v from_o this_o chapter_n 2_o my_o belove_a brethren_n in_o the_o eternal_a truth_n you_o know_v that_o this_o book_n of_o the_o apocalypse_v be_v too_o mysterious_a to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o achitophel_n of_o this_o perish_a world_n 3_o also_o you_o know_v that_o god_n way_n be_v to_o choose_v the_o base_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o most_o honourable_a thing_n thereof_o that_o no_o flesh_n may_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n 4_o moreover_o you_o know_v that_o if_o the_o most_o high_a endue_v a_o man_n with_o a_o divine_a gift_n to_o demonstrate_v his_o eternal_a secret_n to_o his_o brethren_n he_o preserve_v the_o soul_n of_o that_o man_n from_o give_v the_o glory_n of_o that_o heavenly_a power_n to_o his_o own_o net_n my_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o man_n do_v not_o give_v any_o praise_n or_o glory_n to_o any_o god_n or_o christ_n or_o light_n within_o he_o but_o he_o be_v make_v as_o be_v due_a to_o return_v all_o the_o honour_n praise_n or_o glory_n unto_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n or_o spiritual_a fountain_n of_o glory_n without_o he_o from_o whence_o alone_o all_o divine_a light_n as_o crystal_n stream_n flow_v into_o the_o spirit_n of_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n 5_o but_o to_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o i_o see_v a_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n brethren_n what_o angel_n be_v that_o which_o john_n see_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n true_o it_o be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o angelical_a personal_a god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o with_o who_o john_n be_v more_o conversant_a than_o all_o the_o apostle_n in_o divine_a secret_n 6_o again_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o a_o great_a chain_n in_o his_o hand_n that_o be_v this_o angelical_a jesus_n alone_o have_v all_o divine_a power_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n in_o his_o own_o spirit_n over_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n lie_v imagination_n of_o devil_n incarnate_a or_o curse_a man_n 7_o moreover_o the_o everlasting_a gospel_n or_o truth_n which_o proceed_v through_o his_o heavenly_a mouth_n for_o the_o consolation_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o confound_v of_o the_o serpent_n that_o be_v the_o great_a chain_n in_o his_o hand_n 8_o furthermore_o it_o be_v write_v and_o he_o take_v the_o dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n and_o he_o bind_v he_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o a_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o he_o shut_v he_o up_o and_o seal_v the_o door_n upon_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v the_o people_n no_o more_o till_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v fulfil_v my_o spiritual_a friend_n what_o be_v that_o old_a serpent_n dragon_n devil_n which_o be_v bind_v a_o thousand_o year_n by_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o imaginary_a bottomless_a pit_n devil_n within_o the_o body_n of_o man_n that_o persecute_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o own_o person_n apostle_n and_o saint_n 9_o again_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o serpent_n devil_n that_o be_v bind_v or_o shut_v up_o as_o in_o a_o prison_n or_o in_o a_o dungeon_n of_o darkness_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v the_o curse_a spirit_n of_o murder_a cain_n rage_v against_o christ_n and_o his_o seed_n in_o the_o person_n of_o king_n herod_n and_o his_o seed_n or_o seven_o son_n in_o the_o ten_o persecution_n 10_o in_o the_o 12_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o there_o appear_v another_o wonder_n in_o heaven_n for_o behold_v a_o great_a red_a dragon_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n and_o seven_o crown_n upon_o his_o head_n also_o in_o the_o 13_o chapter_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o i_o see_v a_o beast_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n and_o upon_o his_o horn_n be_v ten_o crown_n this_o red_a dragon_n and_o beast_n that_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n be_v that_o herod_n and_o his_o seven_o son_n in_o the_o ten_o persecution_n as_o aforesaid_a 11_o again_o for_o your_o clear_a understanding_n in_o the_o thing_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o three_o last_o verse_n of_o this_o twelve_o chapter_n the_o word_n be_v these_o and_o the_o serpent_n cast_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n water_n after_o the_o woman_n like_o a_o flood_n that_o he_o may_v cause_v she_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o of_o the_o flood_n my_o spiritual_a friend_n you_o may_v know_v that_o this_o serpent_n be_v bloody_a herod_n and_o the_o woman_n be_v that_o virgin_n mary_n that_o bring_v forth_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o the_o flood_n be_v the_o man_n of_o war_n that_o be_v send_v forth_o to_o persecute_v the_o virgin_n and_o murder_v her_o son_n and_o our_o saviour_n but_o the_o earth_n help_v the_o woman_n and_o the_o earth_n open_v her_o mouth_n and_o swallow_v up_o the_o flood_n which_o the_o dragon_n have_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n 12_o my_o spiritual_a friend_n you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o innocent_a child_n that_o be_v murder_v by_o bloody_a herod_n man_n of_o war_n be_v that_o earth_n that_o open_v her_o mouth_n and_o swallow_v up_o that_o flood_n of_o persecution_n that_o be_v intend_v to_o be_v pour_v forth_o upon_o the_o bless_a babe_n or_o god_n of_o eternal_a glory_n 13_o again_o than_o the_o dragon_n be_v wroth_a with_o the_o woman_n and_o go_v and_o make_v war_n with_o the_o remnant_n of_o her_o seed_n which_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n my_o spiritual_a brethren_n you_o may_v also_o know_v because_o herod_n can_v not_o come_v at_o the_o holy_a babe_n and_o his_o mother_n in_o its_o infancy_n therefore_o his_o curse_a spirit_n in_o his_o seed_n or_o son_n do_v persecute_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o believer_n to_o the_o death_n afterward_o if_o you_o look_v with_o a_o spiritual_a eye_n in_o the_o second_o of_o matthew_n and_o the_o act_n upon_o king_n herod_n his_o seed_n council_n of_o priest_n scribes_z and_o man_n of_o war_n than_o you_o may_v see_v this_o to_o be_v the_o very_a mind_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o these_o mysterious_a record_n 14_o again_o when_o the_o earthly_a power_n through_o the_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o the_o everlasting_a gospel_n be_v seal_v up_o unto_o bloody_a mindedness_n against_o the_o messenger_n of_o that_o divine_a truth_n to_o fulfil_v the_o secret_a decree_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n then_o be_v their_o spirit_n shut_v close_a prisoner_n in_o their_o own_o body_n as_o in_o a_o dungeon_n of_o spiritual_a darkness_n through_o which_o in_o stead_n of_o enjoy_v any_o sweet_a peace_n that_o soul_n be_v full_a of_o rage_a madness_n and_o not_o know_v which_o way_n to_o turn_v itself_o it_o think_v to_o get_v out_o of_o its_o condition_n by_o act_v all_o manner_n of_o cruelty_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o its_o power_n 15_o my_o spiritual_a friend_n you_o may_v know_v that_o this_o be_v that_o spiritual_a bind_n of_o that_o old_a serpent_n dragon_n devil_n in_o king_n herod_n and_o his_o herodian_a spirit_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n the_o which_o thousand_o year_n be_v expire_v when_o the_o ten_o persecution_n cease_v which_o be_v the_o ten_o horn_n of_o that_o savage_a beast_n aforesaid_a 16_o for_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a know_v that_o no_o man_n can_v possible_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o holy_a writ_n of_o the_o most_o perfect_a account_n in_o the_o world_n because_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n have_v reserve_v the_o season_n of_o all_o divine_a secret_n in_o his_o own_o heavenly_a breast_n that_o man_n or_o angel_n may_v know_v they_o when_o his_o glory_n see_v it_o most_o fit_a 17_o wherefore_o all_o time_n observation_n in_o reference_n to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_a be_v utter_o confound_v in_o that_o scripture_n say_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v as_o one_o day_n with_o the_o lord_n and_o a_o day_n be_v as_o a_o thousand_o year_n 18_o moreover_o when_o the_o glorious_a truth_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n be_v pour_v forth_o upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o nation_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n through_o the_o spiritual_a ministry_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n you_o may_v know_v while_o that_o commissionated_a spiritual_a power_n remain_v in_o be_v the_o nation_n can_v not_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o hypocritical_a
in_o this_o last_o age_n be_v the_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v to_o finish_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n accord_v to_o that_o say_n of_o john_n rev._n 10._o and_o 7._o where_o it_o be_v say_v but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n when_o he_o shall_v begin_v to_o sound_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v finish_v as_o he_o have_v declare_v to_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n and_o now_o this_o mystery_n of_o god_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o world_n by_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n both_o in_o our_o discourse_n and_o write_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v clear_a to_o you_o that_o be_v capable_a to_o understand_v and_o to_o comprehend_v those_o deep_a and_o high_a mystery_n which_o h●th_v be_v declare_v by_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n both_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o pen_n wherein_o we_o have_v unfold_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o right_a devil_n with_o the_o person_n of_o angel_n and_o their_o nature_n with_o many_o other_o sacred_a mystery_n which_o never_o be_v reveal_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n until_o this_o last_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o two_o seed_n be_v these_o two_o key_n which_o do_v open_a or_o unlock_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o hell_n that_o be_v they_o know_v what_o the_o commission_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v and_o how_o far_o a_o man_n be_v free_v from_o the_o visible_a worship_n of_o his_o commission_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n also_o we_o know_v what_o the_o other_o commission_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o how_o far_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o observe_v the_o visible_a worship_n which_o be_v set_v up_o in_o their_o time_n which_o be_v then_o in_o great_a force_n so_o long_o as_o that_o commission_n stand_v but_o when_o god_n do_v give_v a_o new_a commission_n the_o old_a be_v make_v void_a as_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o visible_a worship_n which_o be_v set_v up_o by_o a_o commission_n therefore_o you_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n commission_n do_v whole_o thrust_v out_o the_o visible_a worship_n which_o be_v set_v up_o by_o moses_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n i_o have_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o hell_n that_o be_v thou_o shall_v be_v a_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o so_o thou_o shall_v open_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n unto_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o declaration_n also_o thou_o shall_v have_v the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o mo●es_n which_o shall_v open_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n unto_o all_o those_o persecute_v jew_n which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o be_v so_o likewise_o it_o be_v w●th_v this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spiri●_n do_v hold_v forth_o no_o visible_a nor_o external_a outward_a worship_n as_o the_o other_o two_o commission_n do_v but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o outward_a nor_o visible_a worship_n to_o be_v use_v in_o it_o but_o that_o invisible_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n only_o which_o be_v to_o worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n which_o spiritual_a worship_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o right_a devil_n upon_o which_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o other_o two_o commission_n both_o stand_v upon_o which_o no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n at_o this_o day_n do_v or_o can_v know_v but_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n only_o and_o those_o which_o come_v to_o understand_v and_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o commission_n much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v in_o this_o thing_n but_o it_o will_v be_v too_o large_a a_o epistle_n therefore_o my_o counsel_n and_o advice_n unto_o you_o that_o do_v believe_v or_o shall_v come_v to_o believe_v in_o this_o last_o spiritual_a commission_n be_v that_o you_o will_v serious_o read_v and_o peruse_v this_o book_n call_v a_o divine_a looking-glass_n though_o it_o have_v be_v much_o slight_v and_o disregard_v because_o of_o the_o abuse_n that_o it_o do_v receive_v in_o the_o press_n yet_o there_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o the_o most_o high_a mystery_n of_o all_o which_o have_v not_o be_v reveal_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v until_o now_o but_o i_o have_v occasion_n for_o to_o reprint_v it_o again_o have_v read_v it_o over_o with_o much_o serious_a deliberation_n and_o find_v in_o it_o such_o variety_n of_o matter_n with_o such_o deep_a profound_a mystery_n which_o can_v not_o be_v declare_v but_o by_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o john_n reeve_n so_o that_o i_o hope_v that_o you_o that_o have_v receive_v some_o light_n in_o your_o understanding_n concern_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o right_a devil_n upon_o the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o do_v depend_v many_o other_o heavenly_a mystery_n which_o be_v treat_v upon_o in_o this_o book_n which_o i_o do_v desire_n and_o shall_v be_v glad_a that_o you_o may_v increase_v and_o grow_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o so_o that_o you_o may_v be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n while_o you_o be_v here_o and_o your_o knowledge_n perfect_v in_o glory_n hereafter_o by_o lodowick_n muggleton_n the_o printer_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n there_o be_v but_o few_o error_n in_o this_o book_n by_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o press_n and_o therefore_o not_o worth_a the_o recite_v of_o every_o particular_a literal_a fault_n i_o shall_v only_o advertise_v thou_o of_o some_o escape_n which_o may_v perhaps_o impede_fw-la the_o sense_n viz._n chap_n 18._o ver_fw-la 31._o read_v without_o chap._n 33._o ver_fw-la 5._o for_o of_o read_z or_o chap._n 38._o ver_fw-la 37._o for_o visible_a read_v invisible_a chap._n 39_o ver_fw-la 33._o for_o impossible_o read_v impossible_a these_o be_v the_o most_o material_a you_o be_v desire_v to_o correct_v with_o the_o pen_n the_o other_o every_o ordinary_a capacity_n may_v understand_v without_o amendment_n farewell_o a_o divine_a look_a glass_n chap._n i._n 1_o from_o whence_o all_o write_n proceed_v 2_o a_o necessity_n of_o extraordinary_a light_n to_o satisfy_v or_o silence_v curious_a question_n 3_o the_o name_n of_o the_o two_o last_o witness_n and_o the_o time_n of_o their_o call_n 4_o the_o high_a query_n concern_v the_o eternal_a estate_n of_o mankind_n 5_o of_o the_o form_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n from_o all_o eternity_n who_o continual_o increase_v 6_o the_o person_n of_o god_n be_v the_o object_n of_o true_a faith_n 7_o no_o reason_n in_o god_n 8_o the_o pure_a reason_n in_o man_n can_v understand_v the_o scripture_n my_o belove_a brethren_n you_o know_v that_o all_o speaking_n or_o writing_n be_v either_o natural_a or_o spiritual_a and_o that_o of_o necessity_n they_o proceed_v from_o their_o several_a head_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n or_o humane_a imagination_n 2_o moreover_o 〈◊〉_d know_v also_o that_o a_o man_n have_v need_n be_v endue_v with_o a_o extraordinary_a light_n to_o satisfy_v or_o silence_v curious_a question_n concern_v thing_n which_o be_v eternal_a 3_o dear_a friend_n i_o john_n reeve_n be_v a_o poor_a layman_n so_o call_v upon_o a_o declaration_n that_o the_o most_o high_a from_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n speak_v unto_o i_o in_o the_o year_n 1651._o you_o may_v be_v sure_a since_o that_o the_o propound_v of_o nice_a question_n have_v not_o be_v want_v unto_o i_o and_o my_o spiritual_a companion_n lodowick_n muggleton_n both_o from_o the_o strong_a and_o the_o weak_a 4_o among_o the_o rest_n not_o many_o month_n past_a a_o friend_n of_o my_o be_v somewhat_o trouble_v in_o mind_n be_v move_v to_o propound_v these_o high_a query_n whether_o any_o creature_n be_v form_v of_o purpose_n for_o eternal_a suffering_n or_o whether_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v as_o advantageous_a for_o the_o creator_n glory_n to_o have_v form_v all_o creature_n for_o eternal_a happiness_n as_o otherwise_o or_o if_o any_o creature_n be_v make_v to_o be_v a_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n to_o show_v forth_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a of_o its_o creator_n wherein_o be_v that_o creature_n blame-worthy_a of_o sin_n or_o evil_n which_o through_o a_o secret_a decree_n can_v not_o possible_o avoid_v it_o or_o whence_o come_v that_o sin_n or_o evil_n into_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n if_o they_o be_v pure_a in_o their_o first_o creation_n my_o christian_a brethren_n these_o curious_a query_n will_v occasion_v variety_n of_o spiritual_a matter_n yea_o and_o it_o will_v further_o i_o also_o
to_o please_v god_n furthermore_o it_o be_v write_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 30_o in_o these_o record_n and_o many_o more_o such_o like_a you_o see_v the_o scripture_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o word_n pure_a reason_n by_o which_o man_n can_v know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o true_a god_n or_o of_o his_o heavenly_a secret_n at_o all_o 31_o therefore_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o those_o man_n that_o call_v pure_a reason_n the_o divine_a nature_n be_v fit_a to_o interpret_v scripture_n or_o to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o gospel-minister_n but_o i_o will_v leave_v they_o at_o present_a to_o he_o that_o will_v discover_v they_o soon_o enough_o to_o their_o cost_n chap._n ii_o 1_o what_o the_o substance_n of_o earth_n and_o water_n be_v from_o eternity_n 2_o a_o great_a secret_a reveal_v concern_v death_n and_o hell_n 3_o concern_v the_o heaven_n above_o 4_o earth_n and_o water_n not_o eternal_o glorious_a 5_o the_o residence_n of_o the_o creator_n 6_o earth_n and_o water_n uncreated_a substance_n a_o gain_n in_o the_o next_o place_n by_o inspiration_n from_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n i_o positive_o affirm_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o earth_n and_o water_n be_v from_o all_o eternity_n in_o the_o creator_n presence_n uncreated_a senseless_a dark_a dead_a matter_n like_v unto_o water_n and_o dust_n that_o have_v no_o kind_n of_o life_n or_o light_n or_o virtue_n in_o they_o at_o all_o 2_o also_o i_o declare_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o darkness_n death_n or_o devil_n and_o hell_n lie_v secret_o hide_v in_o that_o earth_n above_o this_o perish_a globe_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o creator_n be_v eternal_o naked_a and_o bare_a both_o in_o their_o root_n and_o in_o their_o fruit_n 3_o again_o i_o declare_v from_o the_o true_a light_n of_o life_n eternal_a that_o that_o world_n or_o kingdom_n where_o the_o creator_n glorious_a person_n be_v visible_a be_v a_o place_n or_o throne_n infinite_a in_o length_n breadth_n or_o height_n answerable_a unto_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n 4_o moreover_o for_o your_o information_n that_o be_v spiritual_a from_o the_o true_a god_n i_o declare_v that_o in_o this_o heavenly_a city_n there_o be_v no_o firmament_n sun_n moon_n nor_o star_n so_o that_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o be_v a_o infinite_a open_a place_n for_o divine_a personal_a ascend_a or_o descend_v at_o pleasure_n only_o under_o foot_n be_v fix_v a_o spiritual_a earth_n and_o a_o crystal_n sea_n 5_o furthermore_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o it_o stand_v to_o very_o good_a sense_n that_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n can_v be_v confine_v to_o a_o finite_a world_n or_o kingdom_n as_o this_o be_v i_o mean_v when_o he_o possess_v the_o throne_n of_o immortality_n as_o at_o this_o time_n or_o before_o he_o become_v a_o body_n of_o unspotted_a flesh_n 6_o again_o concern_v that_o glorious_a earth_n and_o crystal_n sea_n aforesaid_a i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o think_v that_o i_o mean_v it_o be_v eternal_o so_o but_o after_o or_o in_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n and_o variety_n of_o other_o creature_n the_o infinite_a virtue_n of_o the_o creator_n word_n produce_v that_o crystal_n spirituality_n in_o they_o that_o both_o visible_a as_o well_o as_o invisible_a every_o thing_n or_o creature_n appoint_v to_o abide_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n may_v be_v all_o glory_n in_o their_o kind_n and_o measure_n answerabl●_n to_o the_o unmeasurable_a variety_n of_o unspeakable_a glory_n in_o the_o creator_n himself_o 7_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o opinion_n of_o the_o learned_a that_o those_o substance_n earth_n and_o water_n aforesaid_a be_v not_o eternal_a but_o they_o have_v long_o imagine_v that_o the_o creator_n speak_v the_o word_n and_o so_o they_o come_v to_o be_v and_o after_o he_o have_v give_v they_o their_o be_v he_o form_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v out_o of_o they_o 8_o my_o belove_a brethren_n you_o may_v know_v that_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o error_n because_o you_o know_v that_o the_o word_n create_v be_v to_o make_v formless_a dead_a matter_n into_o sensible_a live_a form_n 9_o beside_o this_o you_o know_v as_o for_o create_v of_o those_o element_n of_o water_n or_o dust_n there_o be_v no_o scripture_n make_v mention_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n therefore_o a_o mere_a imagination_n but_o more_o of_o this_o in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n 10_o again_o you_o know_v that_o from_o eternity_n the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o creator_n spirit_n be_v nothing_o but_o immortal_a fiery_a glory_n of_o life_n and_o light_n it_o be_v write_v god_n be_v light_n and_o in_o he_o there_o be_v no_o darkness_n at_o all_o and_o it_o be_v write_v in_o gen._n 1._o and_o darkness_n be_v upon_o the_o deep_a 11_o my_o brethren_n if_o the_o creator_n be_v all_o life_n and_o light_n as_o you_o know_v he_o be_v then_o without_o controversy_n the_o dead_a earth_n and_o dark_a deep_a water_n never_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o glorious_a mouth_n but_o if_o that_o scripture_n shall_v be_v object_v where_o it_o be_v say_v i_o create_v light_n and_o i_o create_v darkness_n to_o that_o i_o answer_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o those_o word_n be_v this_o that_o he_o create_v those_o soul_n that_o be_v natural_o dark_a and_o he_o create_v these_o mortal_a spirit_n that_o be_v full_a of_o immortal_a light_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o meaning_n in_o those_o word_n or_o any_o other_o throughout_o the_o scripture_n that_o god_n create_v or_o give_v any_o be_v or_o begin_n unto_o dead_a dark_a senseless_a earth_n and_o water_n as_o aforesaid_a 12_o whatever_o man_n vain_o imagine_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v if_o they_o shall_v conclude_v there_o be_v nothing_o eternal_a but_o god_n only_o if_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v some_o glorious_a thing_n which_o be_v incomprehensible_o infinite_a than_o i_o will_v fain_o le●rn_v of_o those_o wise_a man_n where_o the_o glorious_a creator_n be_v resident_a when_o he_o give_v a_o be_v to_o earth_n and_o water_n if_o they_o shall_v say_v unto_o i_o that_o he_o be_v uncapable_a to_o be_v in_o any_o one_o place_n because_o he_o be_v every_o where_n as_o to_o that_o i_o can_v understand_v which_o way_n the_o creator_n shall_v be_v every_o where_o or_o any_o where_n at_o all_o if_o he_o have_v no_o place_n or_o habitation_n to_o abide_v in_o neither_o finite_a nor_o infinite_a 13_o god_n be_v all_o light_n life_n joy_n and_o glory_n in_o himself_o from_o eternity_n be_v it_o not_o against_o all_o divine_a or_o humane_a light_n that_o be_v not_o unreasonable_a that_o ever_o those_o da●k_n dead_a element_n of_o earth_n and_o water_n shall_v have_v their_o original_n from_o his_o glorious_a spirit_n because_o their_o nature_n be_v so_o contrary_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v proceed_v from_o one_o another_o for_o alas_o what_o be_v death_n or_o darkness_n be_v it_o not_o through_o the_o absence_n of_o life_n or_o light_n and_o be_v not_o life_n be_v overcome_v by_o death_n absolute_o become_v death_n and_o darkness_n or_o utter_a silence_n for_o a_o moment_n 14_o again_o if_o light_n and_o darkness_n or_o life_n and_o death_n meet_v together_o be_v there_o any_o peace_n or_o agreement_n between_o they_o until_o life_n be_v swallow_v up_o by_o death_n or_o death_n be_v swallow_v up_o into_o life_n 15_o if_o the_o s_o be_v so_o the_o which_o no_o sober_a man_n can_v gainsay_v then_o without_o controversy_n earth_n and_o water_n be_v uncreated_a substance_n eternal_o distinct_a from_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n because_o the_o scripture_n say_v and_o darkness_n cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o deep_a chap._n iii_o 1_o of_o the_o angel_n 2_o their_o form_n and_o nature_n 3_o out_o of_o what_o they_o be_v make_v 4_o the_o serpent_n which_o tempt_v eve_n 5_o the_o cause_n why_o any_o creature_n be_v form_v 6_o who_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 7_o no_o create_a be_v capable_a of_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n to_o dwell_v in_o it_o a_o gain_n from_o the_o true_a light_n of_o life_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o angel_n be_v the_o first_o sensible_a live_a being_n form_v by_o the_o creator_n 2_o i_o declare_v also_o that_o the_o angelical_a host_n be_v all_o produce_v by_o his_o word_n speak_v into_o that_o dust_n without_o or_o above_o this_o visible_a heaven_n 3_o moreover_o i_o positive_o affirm_v from_o the_o same_o light_n that_o all_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o heavenly_a throne_n aforesaid_a be_v person_n in_o form_n like_o man_n and_o not_o bodiless_a spirit_n as_o the_o learned_a have_v long_o declare_v and_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o angelical_a spirit_n be_v pure_a reason_n only_o 4_o from_o the_o god_n of_o all_o
or_o glory_n at_o all_o and_o hell_n or_o misery_n must_v be_v essential_o distinct_a from_o heaven_n or_o glory_n or_o else_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certain_a hell_n or_o misery_n at_o all_o 40_o moreover_o the_o glorious_a person_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n himself_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v essential_o distinct_a from_o man_n angel_n heaven_n earth_n and_o all_o in_o they_o or_o el●e_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o god_n or_o angel_n man_n or_o devil_n heaven_n or_o hell_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o but_o accidental_a thing_n proceed_v from_o those_o four_o element_n of_o earth_n air_n water_n and_o fire_n as_o all_o filthy_a atheist_n vain_o and_o blind_o imagine_v 41_o but_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n or_o receive_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o everliving_a jesus_n into_o your_o innocent_a soul_n to_o abide_v in_o any_o such_o foolish_a darkness_n 42_o wherefore_o for_o your_o confirmation_n chief_o be_v this_o epistle_n write_v that_o you_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o discern_v the_o lie_a notion_n and_o fleshly_a voluntary_a will-worship_n in_o man_n contend_v against_o the_o secret_a decree_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n 43_o furthermo●e_n because_o many_o of_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n be_v as_o yet_o in_o bond_n by_o the_o exceed_a subtlety_n of_o many_o silver-roule_n merchant_n of_o this_o perish_a world_n therefore_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o confirm_v what_o be_v write_v from_o a_o clo●d_n of_o un-erring_a witness_n my_o spiritual_a brethren_n the_o fo●mer_a true_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n wherefore_o it_o be_v sai●_n by_o our_o god_n which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o but_o his_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v away_o 44_o again_o it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n also_o it_o be_v write_v that_o jacob_n be_v love_v and_o esau_n be_v hate_v before_o they_o have_v do_v good_a or_o evil_n that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n may_v remain_v according_a to_o election_n for_o he_o say_v to_o moses_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o will_v have_v compassion_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v compassion_n so_o than_o it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o in_o he_o that_o run_v but_o in_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n further_o it_o be_v write_v but_o o_o man_n who_o be_v thou_o which_o plead_v against_o god_n shall_v the_o thing_n form_v say_v to_o he_o that_o form_v it_o wh●_n have_v thou_o make_v i_o thus_o have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n over_o the_o clay_n to_o make_v of_o the_o same_o lamp_n one_o vessel_n to_o honour_n and_o another_o to_o dishonour_v what_o if_o god_n will_v to_o show_v his_o wrath_n and_o to_o make_v his_o power_n know_v suffer_v with_o long_a pa●ience_n the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n prepare_v to_o destruction_n and_o that_o he_o may_v declare_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n upon_o the_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v unto_o glory_n rom_n 9_o and_o in_o rom._n 8._o it_o be_v thus_o write_v also_o we_o know_v that_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o the_o b●st_n unto_o they_o that_o love_n god_n even_o to_o they_o that_o be_v call_v of_o his_o purpose_n for_o those_o which_o he_o know_v before_o he_o also_o predestinate_v to_o be_v make_v l●ke_n to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n moreover_o who_o he_o predestinate_v th●m_o also_o he_o call_v and_o who_o he_o call_v they_o also_o he_o justify_v and_o who_o he_o justify_v they_o also_o he_o glorify_v again_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o peter_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v wherefore_o also_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n behold_v i_o lay_v in_o zion_n a_o chief_a corner_n stone_n elect_v and_o precious_a and_o he_o that_o believe_v therein_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a unto_o you_o therefore_o which_o believe_v it_o be_v precious_a but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v disobedient_a the_o stone_n which_o the_o bvilder_n d●salowed_v the_o same_o be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n and_o a_o stone_n to_o stumble_v at_o and_o a_o rock_n of_o offence_n even_o to_o they_o which_o stumble_v at_o the_o word_n be_v disobedient_a unto_o the_o which_o thing_n they_o be_v even_o ordain_v but_o you_o be_v a_o choose_a generation_n a_o royal_a friesthood_n a_o holy_a nation_n a_o people_n set_v at_o liberty_n that_o you_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o virtue_n of_o he_o that_o have_v call_v you_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a l●ght_n moreover_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o judas_n be_v these_o word_n for_o there_o be_v certain_a man_n creep_v in_o wh●ch_o be_v before_o of_o old_a ordain_v to_o this_o condemnation_n ungodly_a man_n they_o be_v whi●h_v turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n and_o deny_v god_n the_o only_a lord_n and_o our_o l●rd_n jesus_n christ_n they_o be_v the_o rage_a wave_n of_o the_o sea_n foam_v out_o their_o own_o shame_n they_o be_v wander_a star_n ●o_o wh●m_n be_v reserve_v the_o blackness_n of_o darkness_n for_o ever_o again_o for_o if_o god_n spare_v not_o the_o angel_n that_o have_v sin_v but_o cast_v they_o down_o to_o hell_n and_o deliver_v they_o into_o chain_n of_o darkness_n to_o be_v keep_v unto_o damnation_n what_o will_v become_v of_o all_o those_o angelical_a fleshly_a hypocr●tes_n which_o bless_v themselves_o in_o their_o unrighteousness_n and_o curse_o contend_v for_o it_o even_o against_o the_o holy_a god_n elect_a man_n and_o angel_n and_o their_o own_o conscience_n which_o will_v become_v their_o eternal_a chief_a accountant_a in_o the_o great_a day_n 45_o again_o as_o a_o conclusion_n unto_o what_o be_v write_v aforesaid_a i_o shall_v write_v something_o concern_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o 46_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n can_v you_o possible_o think_v that_o those_o man_n as_o yet_o have_v receive_v the_o spiritual_a truth_n of_o the_o true_a god_n which_o idolize_v the_o visible_a record_n and_o worship_v they_o in_o stead_n of_o that_o holy_a spirit_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o speak_v they_o 47_o again_o do_v ever_o any_o man_n attain_v to_o a_o true_a understanding_n of_o that_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n by_o any_o endeavour_n whatsoever_o from_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n 48_o it_o be_v write_v the_o letter_n kill_v but_o the_o spirit_n give_v life_n again_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n 49_o my_o brethren_n can_v any_o man_n be_v a_o godly_a man_n or_o a_o man_n of_o god_n unless_o he_o have_v the_o spiritual_a light_n of_o life_n eternal_a to_o enable_v he_o to_o understand_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n in_o the_o record_n and_o so_o believe_v unto_o immortality_n chap._n vi_o 1_o of_o the_o scripture_n record_v 2_o of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o man_n that_o deify_v or_o vilify_v they_o 3_o the_o prophet_n prayer_n in_o the_o conclusion_n be_v there_o any_o testimony_n in_o scripture_n that_o ever_o any_o man_n of_o god_n receive_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o spiritual_a jesus_n in_o he_o from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o can_v possible_o know_v whether_o those_o literal_a record_n proceed_v from_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n or_o from_o the_o wisdom_n of_o prudent_a man_n only_o unless_o he_o be_v inspire_v from_o that_o spirit_n which_o speak_v they_o in_o the_o three_o of_o the_o galatian_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v o_o foolish_a galatian_n who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n this_o only_a will_v i_o learn_v of_o you_o receive_v you_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n or_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n preach_v be_v you_o so_o foolish_a that_o after_o you_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n you_o will_v now_o be_v make_v perfect_a by_o the_o flesh_n 2_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n be_v it_o not_o a_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o man_n which_o study_v day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o find_v out_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o letter_n 3_o be_v it_o not_o a_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o man_n which_o labour_v to_o reconcile_v scripture_n of_o seem_a contradiction_n without_o a_o divine_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n 4_o be_v not_o that_o man_n in_o the_o depth_n of_o spiritual_a darkness_n which_o persuade_v his_o hearer_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a and_o plain_a in_o the_o very_a letter_n of_o they_o unto_o that_o man_n reason_n that_o be_v laborious_a to_o know_v they_o 5_o be_v not_o the_o scripture_n all_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o very_o mysterious_a for_o
moon_n and_o star_n 8_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n of_o contrary_a nature_n see_v a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o true_a creation_n or_o redemption_n or_o any_o spiritual_a truth_n whatsoever_o consist_v only_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o which_o give_v they_o their_o being_n therefore_o by_o divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v treat_v again_o of_o that_o glorious_a be_v concern_v who_o there_o be_v and_o have_v be_v in_o this_o world_n such_o innumerable_a dark_a dispute_n 2_o my_o belove_a brethren_n in_o the_o truth_n you_o may_v remember_v that_o unto_o any_o sober_a man_n understanding_n it_o be_v clear_v already_o that_o earth_n and_o water_n be_v a_o eternal_a chaos_n of_o confuse_a matter_n essential_o distinct_a from_o the_o creator_n 3_o also_o you_o may_v remember_v that_o out_o of_o those_o element_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o by_o inspiration_n from_o a_o unerring_a spirit_n that_o the_o divine_a majesty_n have_v create_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v into_o that_o heavenly_a order_n they_o appear_v to_o be_v whether_o for_o a_o time_n or_o for_o eternity_n 4_o moreover_o it_o be_v clear_a also_o that_o without_o those_o eternal_a material_n be_v nothing_o make_v that_o be_v make_v neither_o possible_o can_v be_v only_o that_o serpentine_a devil_n in_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n have_v long_o imagine_v a_o confuse_a creation_n of_o more_o seem_a wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n then_o that_o of_o the_o creator_n as_o abundant_o beforesaid_a 5_o again_o concern_v the_o word_n create_v make_v or_o form_n i_o shall_v write_v a_o little_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o 6_o my_o belove_a brethren_n the_o very_a true_a meaning_n of_o that_o word_n create_v be_v to_o compose_v confuse_v dead_a matter_n into_o complete_a live_a form_n or_o that_o word_n create_v be_v light_a and_o life_n produce_v dark_a dead_a d●st_n or_o water_n into_o sensible_a live_a being_n or_o it_o be_v a_o powerful_a word_n proceed_v from_o a_o glorious_a form_n of_o sensible_a light_n and_o life_n into_o a_o chaos_n of_o confuse_a formless_a matter_n of_o senseless_a darkness_n and_o death_n and_o from_o thence_o produce_v variety_n of_o sensible_a live_a body_n according_a to_o their_o kind_n for_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o creator_n infinite_a wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n in_o creation_n unto_o some_o of_o these_o live_a form_n 7_o again_o see_v unlearned_a spiritual_a man_n wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n therefore_o for_o our_o more_o clear_a understanding_n of_o the_o true_a creator_n in_o order_n thereunto_o i_o shall_v speak_v somewhat_o of_o the_o visible_a heaven_n and_o the_o light_n form_v in_o they_o for_o man_n natural_a comfort_n next_o unto_o the_o creator_n glory_n 8_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v concern_v the_o deep_a water_n throughout_o the_o scripture_n record_n no_o man_n can_v find_v one_o word_n or_o tittle_n in_o reference_n to_o its_o beginning_n therefore_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v be_v eternal_a 9_o likewise_o you_o know_v that_o the_o water_n cover_v the_o earth_n before_o the_o creation_n wherefore_o the_o earth_n be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o deep_a water_n of_o necessity_n must_v needs_o be_v one_o essence_n eternal_o with_o those_o deep_a water_n aforesaid_a 10_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v without_o form_n and_o void_a and_o darkness_n be_v upon_o the_o deep_a and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v upon_o the_o water_n 11_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n you_o can_v be_v deceive_v by_o literal_a interpretation_n as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o deep_a water_n may_v be_v eternal_a but_o that_o lump_n of_o hide_a earth_n within_o those_o water_n have_v a_o beginning_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n 12_o no_o you_o know_v that_o be_v against_o all_o sober_a sense_n or_o reason_n itself_o for_o if_o that_o earth_n which_o be_v within_o the_o water_n proceed_v from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n than_o the_o dark_a deep_a water_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v its_o beginning_n also_o at_o that_o time_n the_o earth_n receive_v its_o be_v because_o in_o the_o lump_n they_o be_v essential_o one_o 13_o wherefore_o what_o ever_o man_n in_o darkness_n have_v dream_v as_o to_o say_v that_o god_n create_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o or_o that_o god_n create_v that_o confuse_a chaos_n of_o water_n and_o earth_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v any_o truth_n in_o it_o that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v no_o creator_n at_o all_o but_o earth_n and_o water_n and_o such_o like_a stuff_n as_o they_o be_v 14_o again_o by_o inspiration_n from_o a_o unerring_a spirit_n i_o positive_o affirm_v against_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o deep_a water_n be_v eternal_o one_o chaos_n of_o confuse_a matter_n distinct_a from_o the_o everliving_a god_n 15_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v out_o of_o that_o matter_n of_o water_n and_o earth_n that_o be_v formless_a and_o void_a god_n do_v by_o a_o word_n speak_v create_v a_o formable_a world_n as_o a_o place_n of_o convenient_a residence_n for_o mortal_n to_o inhabit_v in_o 16_o i_o also_o declare_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o god_n create_v no_o light_n nor_o darkness_n at_o all_o without_o body_n 17_o wherefore_o concern_v those_o word_n then_o god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a that_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v all_o light_n moving_z or_o speak_v into_o the_o deep_a dark_a water_n his_o word_n cause_v a_o light_n to_o appear_v throughout_o those_o water_n to_o make_v a_o distinction_n between_o light_n and_o that_o utter_a darkness_n that_o be_v both_o in_o the_o deep_a water_n and_o the_o earth_n enclose_v as_o a_o prisoner_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o darkness_n 18_o so_o that_o the_o lord_n call_v this_o create_a light_n day_n not_o only_o because_o it_o be_v all_o darkness_n before_o or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o purpose_n to_o form_v a_o more_o eminent_a natural_a light_n than_o that_o be_v but_o as_o aforesaid_a a_o ordinary_a create_a light_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v day_n as_o well_o as_o ordinary_a darkness_n be_v call_v night_n 20_o or_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o very_a word_n light_n signify_v day_n as_o the_o word_n darkness_n signify_v night_n 21_o likewise_o you_o know_v that_o darkness_n be_v not_o darkness_n without_o its_o body_n therefore_o you_o may_v know_v that_o light_n can_v be_v no_o light_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o a_o body_n also_o 22_o it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n light_n nor_o the_o word_n darkness_n be_v or_o possible_o can_v be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o unless_o they_o be_v in_o distinct_a body_n that_o they_o may_v become_v absolute_a being_n of_o light_n or_o being_n of_o darkness_n 23_o it_o be_v write_v again_o god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v a_o firmament_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o water_n and_o let_v it_o separate_v the_o water_n from_o the_o water_n 24_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n i_o declare_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o this_o visible_a firmament_n call_v heaven_n be_v form_v by_o the_o powerful_a word_n of_o the_o creator_n out_o of_o those_o very_a water_n in_o which_o it_o be_v now_o fix_v to_o keep_v they_o asunder_o 25_o moreover_o it_o be_v write_v and_o god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n in_o the_o firmament_n of_o the_o heaven_n to_o give_v light_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o it_o be_v so_o god_n then_o make_v two_o great_a light_n the_o great_a light_n to_o rule_v the_o day_n and_o the_o lesser_a light_n to_o rule_v the_o night_n he_o make_v also_o the_o star_n and_o god_n set_v they_o in_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o earth_n 26_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n whatsoever_o have_v be_v write_v former_o from_o man_n imagination_n concern_v the_o vastness_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n it_o arise_v in_o they_o from_o their_o utter_a darkness_n of_o that_o glorious_a creator_n from_o whence_o all_o true_a light_n proceed_v 27_o wherefore_o from_o that_o light_n by_o who_o no_o man_n ever_o be_v deceive_v in_o some_o measure_n i_o shall_v demonstrate_v why_o the_o lord_n call_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n two_o great_a light_n and_o of_o that_o matter_n of_o which_o they_o be_v make_v 28_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n though_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n transcend_v each_o other_o in_o glory_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v all_o create_v of_o that_o element_n of_o water_n and_o be_v distinct_a body_n of_o light_n fix_v in_o the_o heavenly_a firmament_n 29_o i_o do_v not_o
if_o they_o acknowledge_v this_o rational_a truth_n without_o controversy_n when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v eclipse_v from_o we_o it_o be_v through_o its_o near_a conjunction_n with_o the_o natural_a light_n or_o ruler_n of_o thing_n of_o the_o night_n 58_o and_o when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o moon_n be_v eclipse_v from_o we_o though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o night_n or_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n it_o be_v through_o her_o near_a 〈◊〉_d junction_n with_o the_o natural_a light_n or_o ruler_n of_o the_o day_n or_o a_o planetary_a fire_n answerable_a to_o his_o nature_n 59_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n as_o for_o the_o time_n and_o effect_n of_o eclipse_n i_o leave_v they_o unto_o the_o figurative_a merchant_n of_o a_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n which_o they_o right_o understand_v not_o because_o no_o man_n can_v true_o know_v they_o but_o by_o inspiration_n from_o he_o that_o make_v they_o chap._n viii_o 1_o of_o the_o heaven_n 2_o how_o many_o be_v create_v 3_o no_o more_o but_o three_o 1_o a_o throne_n of_o eternal_a ravish_a glory_n 2_o a_o throne_n of_o natural_a perish_a glory_n 3_o a_o invisible_a spiritual_a throne_n lead_v to_o eternity_n again_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o heavenly_a firmament_n create_v in_o all_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o three_o heaven_n in_o the_o scripture_n 2_o from_o that_o light_n which_o can_v lie_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o a_o three_o heaven_n in_o scripture_n that_o some_o man_n may_v be_v capable_a to_o declare_v unto_o his_o redeem_a one_o how_o many_o heaven_n there_o be_v and_o where_o those_o heaven_n be_v and_o what_o those_o heaven_n be_v 3_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n which_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v harken_v unto_o the_o pure_a light_n of_o life_n eternal_a there_o be_v three_o create_a heaven_n spo●en_v of_o in_o scripture_n record_n and_o no_o more_o no_o nor_o never_o be_v any_o more_o what_o ever_o vain_a man_n have_v imagine_v 4_o the_o first_o be_v that_o three_o heaven_n of_o visible_a and_o invisible_a ravish_a glory_n which_o be_v eternal_a this_o be_v that_o vast_a kingdom_n where_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mighty_a angel_n and_o glorify_a body_n of_o moses_n and_o elias_n do_v now_o inhabit_v behold_v the_o face_n of_o that_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n who_o divine_a nature_n unto_o his_o elect_a be_v crown_n of_o unutterable_a excellency_n 5_o this_o be_v that_o habitation_n three_o heaven_n throne_n or_o kingdom_n of_o ravish_a glory_n above_o the_o starry_a heaven_n speak_v of_o so_o frequent_o in_o scripture_n record_n which_o be_v needless_a to_o nominate_v unto_o you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a 6_o but_o lest_o some_o vain_a glorious_a man_n shall_v say_v whe●e_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o what_o i_o speak_v see_v the_o letter_n be_v their_o god_n who_o they_o adore_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o speak_v they_o therefore_o to_o stop_v their_o carnal_a mouth_n if_o it_o may_v be_v i_o shall_v write_v down_o two_o or_o three_o scripture_n record_n heaven_n be_v my_o throne_n and_o earth_n be_v my_o footstool_n act_v 7._o o_o god_n thy_o throne_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o heb._n 1_o that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n that_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o heaven_n heb._n 8._o 7_o the_o second_o heaven_n which_o the_o lord_n create_v be_v not_o a_o spiritual_a but_o a_o natural_a therefore_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v fade_v away_o 8_o this_o heaven_n be_v this_o visible_a firmament_n adorn_v with_o majestical_a light_n above_o we_o and_o a_o fix_a earth_n beneath_o we_o beautify_v in_o its_o season_n with_o variety_n of_o delight_n which_o be_v nature_n only_o desire_v haven_n through_o the_o secret_a decree_n of_o the_o most_o wise_a god_n to_o manifest_v the_o variety_n of_o his_o most_o infinite_a wisdom_n unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n in_o the_o create_v of_o such_o natural_a glory_n to_o perish_v and_o the_o angelical_a merciless_a ruler_n thereof_o after_o they_o have_v enjoy_v their_o momentary_a glory_n 9_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o cite_v two_o or_o three_o scripture_n as_o a_o visible_a testimony_n to_o this_o second_o heaven_n also_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n 10_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v that_o there_o can_v not_o be_v any_o beginning_n unto_o the_o creator_n therefore_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o say_n do_v include_v that_o immortal_a throne_n above_o and_o this_o mortal_a world_n beneath_o as_o have_v a_o beginning_n be_v speak_v for_o the_o capacity_n unto_o man_n or_o angel_n which_o know_v their_o be_v be_v from_o another_o and_o understand_v also_o their_o continuance_n in_o those_o several_a heaven_n for_o a_o time_n or_o for_o eternity_n 11_o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v establish_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o do_v remain_v and_o they_o shall_v wax_v old_a as_o do_v a_o garment_n 12_o again_o the_o three_o and_o last_o create_v heaven_n be_v that_o within_o the_o body_n of_o man_n or_o the_o first_o man_n adam_n the_o which_o spiritual_a creation_n be_v in_o natural_a body_n and_o within_o this_o perish_a globe_n it_o be_v make_v capable_a through_o its_o union_n with_o changeable_a nature_n to_o enter_v into_o mortality_n that_o by_o the_o most_o secreet_a decree_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n after_o a_o moment_n taste_v of_o silent_a death_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v it_o may_v quicken_v again_o through_o death_n itself_o spiritual_a body_n full_a of_o divine_a glory_n that_o as_o one_o man_n natural_o as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n all_o the_o elect_a may_v as_o swift_a as_o think_v ascend_v to_o meet_v their_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o with_o his_o divine_a person_n of_o bright_a burn_a glory_n enter_v into_o that_o prepare_a throne_n of_o eternal_a pleasure_n 13_o this_o create_v or_o inspire_v light_n in_o man_n you_o know_v have_v variety_n of_o scripture-expression_n for_o the_o set_n forth_o its_o excellency_n that_o it_o shall_v enjoy_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v as_o namely_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v within_o you_o christ_n in_o you_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n it_o be_v a_o true_a say_n for_o if_o we_o be_v create_v together_o with_o he_o we_o also_o shall_v live_v together_o with_o he_o 2_o tim._n 2_o thus_o god_n create_v the_o man_n in_o his_o image_n in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n create_v he_o he_o he_o create_v they_o male_a and_o female_a gen._n 1._o 14_o thus_o brief_o i_o have_v touch_v upon_o the_o three_o create_a heaven_n nominate_v in_o the_o literal_a record_n unto_o a_o invisible_a yet_o visible_a infinite_a be_v of_o all_o finite_a being_n bless_v for_o ever_o viz._n a_o throne_n of_o eternal_a ravish_a glory_n second_o a_o throne_n of_o natural_a perish_a glory_n last_o a_o invisible_a spiritual_a throne_n lead_v they_o to_o eternity_n 15_o from_o that_o spiritual_a majesty_n by_o who_o be_v form_v the_o heaven_n aforesaid_a and_o all_o in_o they_o i_o positive_o affirm_v against_o all_o mortal_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v that_o though_o man_n have_v write_v or_o shall_v speak_v of_o more_o world_n than_o what_o be_v forewritten_a those_o additional_a heaven_n proceed_v from_o their_o own_o imaginary_a confuse_a reason_n and_o not_o from_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o all_o heavenly_a order_n chap._n ix_o a_o exact_a scripture_n rule_v to_o prove_v the_o man_n christ_n glorify_v to_o be_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n in_o one_o distinct_a person_n my_o belove_a brethren_n which_o desire_v a_o right_a understanding_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n in_o scripture_n record_n take_v special_a notice_n of_o this_o one_o thing_n and_o you_o can_v be_v deceive_v by_o all_o the_o wisdom_n or_o subtlety_n of_o man_n 2_o i_o say_v again_o from_o the_o lord_n take_v good_a notice_n of_o those_o scripture_n which_o speak_v positive_o concern_v god_n or_o the_o high_a heaven_n or_o angel_n or_o eternal_a life_n or_o eternal_a death_n or_o of_o a_o natural_a heaven_n and_o all_o mortal_a thing_n within_o its_o orb_n why_o because_o you_o may_v know_v that_o all_o privative_a scripture_n though_o never_o so_o eminent_a or_o numerous_a whole_o depend_v upon_o positive_a scripture_n 3_o my_o dear_a brethren_n for_o who_o my_o soul_n be_v in_o continual_a travel_n until_o the_o pure_a truth_n be_v root_v in_o you_o some_o of_o you_o be_v weak_a of_o comprehension_n i_o shall_v
they_o that_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o creator_n you_o shall_v never_o hear_v they_o speak_v evil_a of_o his_o most_o glorious_a person_n nor_o endure_v to_o hear_v any_o one_o blaspheme_v his_o holy_a name_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o very_a depth_n of_o their_o despairing_n they_o will_v speak_v honourable_o of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n and_o justify_v he_o in_o all_o his_o proceed_n towards_o they_o or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o creature_n 6_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o be_v that_o repentance_n or_o godly_a sorrow_n in_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o that_o most_o acceptable_a spiritual_a sacrifice_n that_o can_v be_v offer_v up_o unto_o he_o if_o the_o wound_a spirit_n do_v but_o know_v it_o 7_o a_o elect_a vessel_n under_o fear_n of_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v have_v this_o property_n in_o it_o also_o that_o it_o be_v both_o ready_a and_o willing_a if_o it_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v speak_v peace_n through_o the_o mouth_n of_o any_o man_n or_o woman_n unto_o its_o poor_a soul_n even_o to_o walk_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o that_o creature_n 8_o another_o true_a testimony_n in_o a_o choose_a vessel_n be_v this_o notwithstanding_o his_o present_a hopelesness_n of_o mercy_n in_o reference_n to_o his_o former_a rebellion_n yet_o his_o soul_n through_o the_o secret_a love_n of_o god_n by_o his_o own_o light_n in_o he_o be_v not_o only_o fearful_a of_o further_a temptation_n unto_o evil_n but_o it_o do_v also_o abhor_v all_o kind_n of_o iniquity_n whatsoever_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o its_o contrariety_n against_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o be_v full_a of_o long_v after_o perfection_n whether_o it_o be_v through_o life_n or_o death_n 9_o again_o another_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o a_o experimental_a wound_a spirit_n be_v this_o if_o out_o of_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n they_o open_v their_o sorrow_n unto_o their_o suppose_a or_o real_a friend_n they_o will_v oftentimes_o say_v these_o or_o such_o like_a word_n o_o wretched_a creature_n that_o i_o be_o sure_a never_o any_o one_o rebel_v against_o such_o light_n as_o i_o have_v do_v i_o have_v be_v so_o ravish_v sometime_o with_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n shine_v into_o my_o poor_a soul_n that_o i_o think_v i_o have_v be_v unmsveable_a for_o ever_o and_o yet_o in_o a_o little_a season_n through_o remembrance_n of_o former_a iniquity_n commit_v against_o so_o glorious_a a_o majesty_n or_o ●ew_a temptation_n against_o so_o gracious_a a_o father_n i_o be_o so_o full_a of_o burn_a horror_n of_o confuse_a darkness_n as_o if_o never_o any_o true_a light_n of_o life_n have_v appear_v in_o i_o 10_o again_o through_o a_o strong_a desire_n of_o know_v of_o the_o secret_a purpose_n of_o the_o creator_n towards_o they_o they_o will_v say_v o_o that_o i_o never_o have_v be_v bear_v or_o that_o i_o have_v be_v a_o toad_n or_o any_o other_o create_v be_v but_o a_o man_n or_o that_o that_o god_n which_o give_v i_o a_o be_v will_v finish_v my_o intolerable_a sorrow_n through_o my_o everlasting_a dissolution_n or_o if_o i_o must_v perish_v o_o that_o i_o be_v in_o it_o that_o i_o may_v know_v what_o i_o must_v trust_v unto_o for_o i_o think_v i_o shall_v find_v more_o ease_n than_o now_o i_o do_v or_o if_o it_o be_v thy_o pleasure_n neither_o to_o let_v i_o know_v it_o nor_o know_v it_o not_o o_o give_v i_o strength_n to_o bear_v it_o and_o leave_v i_o under_o the_o hot_a wrath_n that_o thy_o fury_n can_v administer_v unto_o i_o 11_o these_o and_o such_o like_a bitter_a lamentation_n be_v the_o elect_v belove_v of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n subject_n unto_o which_o be_v leave_v under_o a_o despair_a condition_n upon_o what_o account_n soever_o a_o man_n may_v bear_v any_o natural_a suffering_n whatsoever_o because_o he_o know_v they_o will_v have_v a_o end_n but_o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v not_o know_v any_o end_n thereof_o 12_o it_o be_v thou_o o_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o wound_v the_o soul_n of_o thy_o redeem_v one_o through_o thy_o spiritual_a absence_n and_o it_o be_v thou_o alone_o must_v heal_v they_o with_o thy_o glorious_a presence_n 13_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n if_o they_o can_v weep_v river_n of_o blood_n or_o can_v submit_v for_o a_o season_n to_o bear_v the_o same_o wrath_n in_o their_o own_o spirit_n that_o can_v move_v thou_o in_o the_o least_o to_o release_v that_o wound_a soul_n who_o thou_o love_v as_o thy_o own_o self_n until_o the_o fix_a time_n thereof_o which_o be_v only_o know_v to_o thyself_o that_o thou_o alone_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o thy_o love_n trial_n 14_o o_o empty_a vain_a man_n who_o ever_o you_o be_v which_o measure_v the_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n by_o your_o own_o lie_v imagination_n and_o by_o your_o blind_a reason_n think_v to_o persuade_v the_o unchangeable_a god_n with_o goodly_a word_n to_o walk_v out_o of_o his_o own_o way_n 15_o and_o because_o your_o vain_a spirit_n be_v upon_o any_o occasion_n subject_a to_o change_v you_o think_v the_o unchangeable_a god_n be_v like_a unto_o yourselves_o and_o may_v change_v also_o and_o so_o either_o for_o silver_n or_o honour_n or_o both_o you_o combine_v together_o as_o one_o man_n to_o public_a or_o private_a meeting_n to_o cheat_v one_o another_o with_o flatter_a speech_n and_o call_v it_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v ready_a to_o condemn_v all_o that_o come_v not_o to_o it_o as_o ungodly_a man_n orheretick_n though_o in_o their_o deal_n be_v ween_v man_n and_o man_n they_o be_v seven_o time_n more_o righteous_a than_o yourselves_o and_o in_o obedience_n unto_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v subject_a to_o all_o civil_a authority_n for_o conscience_n sake_n by_o suffer_v under_o they_o leave_v all_o vengeance_n unto_o the_o lord_n who_o have_v say_v vengeance_n be_v i_o and_o i_o will_v repay_v it_o chap._n fourteen_o 1_o a_o moderate_a discourse_n concern_v civil_a war_n in_o a_o kingdom_n 2_o the_o people_n subjection_n to_o the_o law_n 3_o wherein_o several_a objection_n be_v answer_v 4_o many_o thing_n of_o very_a great_a consequence_n seasonable_o declare_v in_o the_o next_o place_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o that_o i_o do_v not_o account_v those_o man_n true_o rational_a which_o say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n but_o nature_n only_o 2_o or_o which_o say_v that_o god_n be_v only_o a_o incomprehensible_a formless_a spirit_n 3_o neither_o do_v i_o account_v they_o spiritual_a or_o rational_a which_o confess_v a_o infinite_a be_v of_o being_n and_o yet_o deny_v the_o creature_n to_o be_v a_o creature_n and_o the_o creator_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n my_o meaning_n be_v this_o which_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o glorious_a creator_n and_o the_o poor_a empty_a creature_n but_o affirm_v the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o glorious_a purity_n to_o have_v his_o abode_n in_o all_o impure_a spirit_n 4_o though_o god_n be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o sensible_a or_o insensible_a live_a being_n by_o virtue_n of_o creation_n yet_o i_o positive_o affirm_v against_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o neither_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n nor_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o his_o own_o person_n only_o 5_o again_o i_o do_v not_o account_v those_o man_n true_o spirit●_n 〈◊〉_d or_o rational_a as_o yet_o which_o pretend_v to_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v personal_a live_a being_n and_o yet_o deny_v the_o personal_a god_n of_o all_o infinite_a glory_n 6_o moreover_o though_o man_n speak_v like_a oracle_n and_o seem_o appear_v to_o be_v innocent_a as_o dove_n yet_o if_o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n but_o within_o this_o world_n only_o or_o if_o they_o confess_v a_o god_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o another_o world_n if_o they_o say_v he_o be_v three_o person_n in_o coequal_a godhead_n glory_n or_o in_o degree_n one_o above_o another_o or_o their_o spirit_n be_v in_o one_o personal_a majesty_n or_o any_o such_o like_a confusion_n concern_v the_o one_o personal_a be_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 7_o from_o his_o unerring_a spirit_n i_o declare_v that_o none_o of_o these_o be_v the_o man_n that_o i_o account_v spiritual_a or_o rational_a ground_a man_n what_o ever_o good_a thought_n they_o have_v of_o themselves_o or_o one_o of_o another_o wherefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o sober_a rational_a man_n in_o the_o world_n come_v let_v we_o reason_n together_o 8_o what_o though_o thou_o and_o this_o present_a civil_a power_n to_o your_o own_o think_v and_o full_a resolution_n of_o equal_a good_a to_o the_o three_o nation_n do_v engage_v together_o against_o
our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o civil_a magistrate_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o this_o rule_n because_o you_o know_v then_o that_o he_o can_v not_o execute_v justice_n upon_o any_o man_n upon_o what_o account_n soever_o 30_o again_o whether_o a_o magistrate_n be_v a_o just_a or_o unjust_a person_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o upon_o a_o civil_a account_n he_o represent_v the_o person_n or_o place_n of_o the_o righteous_a judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a wherefore_o according_a to_o his_o obedience_n or_o disobedience_n unto_o his_o command_n he_o shall_v be_v reward_v in_o this_o world_n or_o that_o to_o come_v therefore_o know_v that_o since_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n clothe_v himself_o with_o flesh_n and_o bone_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n to_o kill_v or_o consent_n to_o murder_v the_o head_n magistrate_n it_o be_v as_o if_o thou_o have_v murder_v the_o king_n of_o glory_n himself_o 31_o though_o nothing_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o chance_n or_o fortune_n but_o by_o the_o providential_a decree_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n yet_o no_o man_n can_v be_v clear_v in_o his_o conscience_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o innocent_a blood_n all_o his_o day_n if_o secret_o or_o open_o he_o shall_v consent_v to_o kill_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o nation_n without_o a_o immediate_a command_n by_o voice_n of_o word_n from_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 32_o suppose_v the_o former_a governor_n of_o these_o nation_n be_v guilty_a of_o much_o innocent_a blood_n and_o ruin_n of_o family_n by_o their_o spiritual_a court_n so_o call_v and_o through_o their_o imaginary_a wisdom_n lucifer-like_a sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n command_a man_n to_o worship_v their_o invention_n triumph_v over_o all_o tender_a conscience_n which_o can_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o their_o egyptian_a calf_n and_o yet_o what_o spiritual_a or_o sober_a rational_a man_n can_v blame_v those_o man_n for_o their_o wilful_a bloody-mindedness_a see_v a_o blind_a fiery_a zeal_n move_v they_o to_o it_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o their_o god_n 33_o if_o any_o of_o they_o through_o covetousness_n of_o silver_n or_o honour_n among_o earthly_a prince_n do_v only_o pretend_v a_o divine_a worship_n and_o through_o secret_a envy_n to_o those_o which_o can_v not_o obey_v their_o command_n do_v ruin_n man_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o their_o power_n through_o those_o jesuitical_a councillor_n who_o be_v atheistical_a can_v any_o sober_a man_n imagine_v or_o think_v that_o those_o man_n be_v not_o oftentimes_o convince_v of_o hypocritical_a irrationality_n beside_o a_o secret_a fear_n of_o eternal_a vengeance_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o fleshly_a glory_n through_o which_o they_o be_v strengthen_v in_o their_o spirit_n to_o flatter_v themselves_o up_o with_o vain_a hope_n that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o god_n to_o cheat_v themselves_o with_o a_o conceit_n that_o it_o be_v irrational_a cruelty_n for_o a_o man_n to_o think_v that_o the_o creator_n can_v be_v so_o unmerciful_a as_o to_o create_v man_n for_o eternal_a damnation_n in_o reference_n to_o momentary_a infirmity_n which_o their_o frail_a nature_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n prevent_v 34_o again_o if_o thou_o which_o thus_o reason_v do_v true_o understand_v that_o thou_o have_v no_o power_n in_o thyself_o to_o withstand_v these_o natural_a evil_n beforesaid_a thou_o can_v not_o possible_o then_o commit_v they_o but_o this_o be_v hide_v from_o thy_o eye_n by_o the_o secret_a wisdom_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n that_o thou_o may_v clear_v his_o divine_a justice_n in_o reference_n to_o thy_o former_a cruelty_n with_o everlasting_a thought_n that_o thou_o may_v have_v do_v otherwise_o when_o thou_o be_v in_o thy_o earthly_a pomp_n if_o thou_o will_v 35_o if_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n shall_v neither_o recompense_v man_n in_o this_o life_n nor_o in_o that_o to_o come_v for_o all_o their_o wilful_a vainglorious_a bloody_a cruelty_n which_o they_o think_v they_o can_v prevent_v if_o they_o will_v then_o indeed_o these_o seem_a wise_a man_n may_v just_o say_v if_o there_o be_v a_o god_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o any_o spiritual_a equity_n that_o he_o fall_v short_a of_o all_o rational_a equity_n whatsoever_o 36_o another_o infallible_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o writing_n be_v this_o that_o though_o many_o writing_n extant_a be_v more_o acute_a in_o form_n of_o word_n yet_o throughout_o this_o book_n thou_o shall_v find_v no_o point_n absolute_o contradict_v itself_o nor_o one_o another_o 37_o again_o another_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o writing_n be_v this_o that_o it_o discover_v the_o vanity_n of_o all_o formal_a or_o irrational_a opinion_n in_o man_n concern_v god_n worship_n angel_n devil_n sin_n heaven_n or_o hell_n 38_o by_o this_o infallible_a rule_n also_o thou_o may_v know_v that_o this_o epistle_n proceed_v from_o a_o spirit_n infinite_o above_o all_o kind_n of_o reason_v in_o man_n or_o angel_n because_o it_o allow_v no_o man_n upon_o what_o pretence_n soever_o to_o murder_v one_o another_o or_o to_o sit_v in_o god_n throne_n to_o cut_v off_o the_o head_n magistrate_n or_o to_o rebel_v against_o he_o with_o a_o sword_n of_o steel_n or_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o he_o or_o desire_v evil_a unto_o he_o 39_o moreover_o though_o this_o book_n be_v pen_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o sinful_a man_n yet_o by_o this_o undeniable_a argument_n thou_o may_v know_v it_o proceed_v from_o that_o spirit_n that_o can_v be_v deceive_v because_o it_o deny_v all_o power_n in_o man_n or_o angel_n as_o to_o be_v capable_a to_o act_v spiritual_a or_o natural_a good_a to_o one_o another_o or_o to_o resist_v spiritual_a or_o natural_a evil_n without_o a_o continue_a light_n proceed_v from_o a_o spiritual_a body_n too_o infinite_o glorious_a to_o be_v essential_o unite_v to_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n or_o man_n yet_o this_o wonderful_a god_n be_v now_o for_o everlasting_a abide_n in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n therefore_o not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v break_v upon_o the_o tree_n or_o corrupt_v in_o the_o grave_n only_o his_o godhead_n natural_a life_n be_v leave_v in_o this_o world_n for_o a_o everlasting_a consolation_n unto_o those_o that_o shall_v attain_v to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o unvaluable_a life-blood_n of_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n himself_o that_o be_v free_o pour_v out_o unto_o death_n for_o the_o redemption_n from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o fear_v of_o eternal_a death_n and_o for_o a_o dreadful_a witness_n at_o the_o great_a day_n against_o those_o man_n that_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o their_o own_o unbelieving_a spirit_n to_o vilify_v the_o glorious_a god_n for_o abase_v himself_o into_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a mortal_n chap._n xv._o 1_o of_o the_o error_n of_o error_n in_o man_n who_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n or_o christ_n but_o in_o this_o creation_n only_o 2_o several_a objection_n and_o answer_n concern_v the_o death_n of_o the_o soul_n 3_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o man_n be_v the_o invisible_a image_n of_o god_n which_o purify_v the_o inward_a filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n and_o present_v the_o certain_a truth_n of_o a_o eternal_a life_n of_o glory_n or_o shame_n 4_o no_o need_n of_o a_o new_a birth_n if_o there_o be_v a_o sufficient_a light_n of_o christ_n in_o generation_n to_o conduct_v to_o heaven_n 5_o child_n can_v understand_v spiritual_a or_o natural_a good_a or_o evil_n so_o need_v not_o christ_n spiritual_a gift_n in_o the_o womb_n for_o eternal_a happiness_n 6_o a_o great_a error_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o any_o man_n but_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n only_o 7_o two_o mark_n of_o reprobate_n you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thousand_o of_o atheistical_a mind_a man_n and_o woman_n at_o this_o instant_n which_o be_v possess_v with_o a_o spirit_n reprobate_v unto_o all_o inward_a and_o outward_a purity_n out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o redemption_n what_o ever_o man_n shall_v vain_o imagine_v to_o the_o contrary_a only_o their_o free_a time_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n be_v fix_v these_o be_v those_o which_o say_v all_o thing_n come_v natural_o of_o themselves_o also_o they_o will_v say_v there_o be_v no_o beginning_n of_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o but_o from_o all_o eternity_n all_o thing_n be_v as_o you_o see_v and_o so_o shall_v continue_v to_o all_o eternity_n 2_o there_o be_v many_o of_o these_o man_n which_o appear_v in_o temple_n of_o stone_n or_o else_o where_o as_o experimental_a speaker_n of_o the_o everlasting_a gospel_n and_o be_v more_o acute_a in_o a_o seem_a glorious_a language_n
be_v with_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n for_o though_o that_o inshining_a light_n and_o life_n be_v of_o the_o very_a same_o nature_n of_o god_n himself_o yet_o if_o his_o spirit_n shall_v whole_o retain_v its_o glorious_a brightness_n within_o his_o own_o body_n all_o its_o former_a light_n or_o life_n will_v either_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v defile_v as_o adam_n be_v or_o else_o it_o will_v perish_v for_o want_v of_o the_o renew_n presence_n of_o his_o glorious_a spirit_n 8_o again_o through_o that_o consolation_n flow_v from_o the_o inshining_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n you_o know_v in_o all_o sensible_a or_o rational_a creature_n there_o be_v a_o desire_n to_o behold_v that_o bright_a shine_a face_n from_o whence_o their_o joy_n proceed_v 9_o so_o likewise_o through_o that_o spiritual_a joy_n and_o hope_n of_o glory_n flow_v from_o the_o inspire_a light_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n there_o be_v as_o strong_a desire_n in_o those_o that_o enjoy_v this_o light_n to_o behold_v that_o glorious_a face_n from_o whence_o it_o proceed_v 10_o again_o if_o the_o sun_n have_v not_o a_o distinct_a body_n or_o face_n to_o give_v forth_o his_o light_n into_o the_o creation_n you_o know_v there_o can_v be_v no_o sunshine_n at_o all_o 11_o so_o likewise_o you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o if_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n have_v not_o a_o person_n or_o immortal_a face_n to_o display_v the_o sunbeam_n of_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n into_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n there_o can_v be_v no_o god_n all_o all_o 12_o therefore_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o all_o that_o light_n life_n or_o glory_n shine_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o elect_a man_n or_o angel_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o a_o god_n or_o christ_n within_o they_o but_o from_o a_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o a_o god_n or_o a_o christ_n without_o they_o too_o transcendent_a glorious_a to_o be_v possess_v by_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n or_o man_n as_o beforesaid_a 13_o again_o though_o the_o natural_a life_n of_o create_a being_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v continue_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o inshining_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o what_o ever_o joy_v the_o creature_n be_v possess_v thereby_o it_o do_v neither_o add_v nor_o diminish_v unto_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o least_o 14_o so_o likewise_o though_o the_o spiritual_a light_n of_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n be_v everlasting_o continue_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o inshining_a light_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n yet_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o what_o joy_n or_o glory_n soever_o the_o creature_n be_v possess_v withal_o that_o it_o do_v neither_o add_v nor_o diminish_v the_o creator_n glory_n in_o the_o least_o therefore_o you_o which_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v understand_v that_o if_o any_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v be_v possess_v with_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n it_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v avoid_v but_o he_o must_v become_v infinite_a immortal_a unchangeable_a and_o eternal_a even_o as_o the_o creator_n himself_o be_v 15_o again_o whether_o creature_n be_v possess_v with_o joy_n or_o sorrow_n life_n or_o death_n by_o a_o extraordinary_a light_n proceed_v from_o the_o sun_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o according_a to_o his_o understanding_n he_o glory_v in_o himself_o equal_o in_o reference_n unto_o what_o be_v effect_v by_o he_o so_o likewise_o whether_o creature_n be_v possess_v with_o spiritual_a joy_n or_o sorrow_n eternal_a life_n o●_n death_n by_o a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a presence_n or_o absence_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n yet_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o the_o most_o glorious_a god_n equal_o rejoice_v in_o himself_o in_o relation_n unto_o what_o be_v produce_v 16_o again_o though_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sun_n through_o it_o be_v cretae_v brightness_n be_v so_o exceed_o glorious_a that_o it_o be_v utter_o uncapable_a of_o natural_a pollution_n from_o any_o creature_n within_o its_o orb_n yet_o you_o know_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o power_n in_o measure_n qualify_v with_o a_o suitable_a capacity_n to_o receive_v his_o in_o shine_a light_n be_v rather_o harden_v or_o destroy_v by_o his_o appearance_n than_o any_o way_n comfort_v or_o revive_v in_o the_o least_o witness_v the_o fire_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o of_o a_o adamantine_a nature_n 17_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o everlasting_a creator_n for_o though_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v so_o infinite_o pure_a that_o if_o it_o be_v his_o divine_a pleasure_n it_o destroy_v all_o impurity_n immediate_o and_o whole_o convert_v a_o pollute_a creature_n into_o its_o own_o divine_a likeness_n you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n by_o his_o power_n be_v not_o in_o some_o measure_n qualify_v to_o receive_v his_o glorious_a incomes_a instead_o of_o dissolve_v their_o spirit_n into_o a_o soft_a and_o sweet_a pleasantness_n it_o harden_v their_o legal_a spirit_n with_o envy_n against_o the_o creator_n like_v unto_o brass_n or_o the_o nether-milstone_n according_a to_o that_o of_o paul_n where_o he_o say_v they_o be_v a_o sweet_a savour_n unto_o god_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n in_o they_o that_o be_v save_v and_o of_o death_n unto_o death_n in_o they_o that_o perish_v chap._n xvii_o 1_o no_o man_n salvation_n or_o damnation_n lie_v in_o his_o own_o will_n but_o in_o the_o prerogative_n of_o god_n 2_o divers_a absurdity_n which_o follow_v from_o the_o opinion_n that_o christ_n be_v only_o within_o man_n 3_o a_o question_n and_o answer_v concern_v a_o twofold_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creature_n 4_o if_o the_o essential_a spirit_n be_v unite_v unto_o creature_n it_o can_v not_o be_v infinite_a this_o i_o will_v glad_o have_v man_n and_o woman_n to_o understand_v which_o be_v elect_v unto_o glory_n that_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n or_o damnation_n of_o create_a being_n lie_v not_o in_o the_o will_n power_n or_o desire_v of_o man_n or_o angel_n or_o in_o any_o divine_a light_n receive_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o make_v they_o but_o only_o within_o the_o glorious_a breast_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n himself_o 2_o that_o neither_o elect_a man_n nor_o angel_n may_v glory_v in_o themselves_o or_o render_v praise_n honour_n power_n wisdom_n or_o salvation_n unto_o any_o spiritual_a light_n joy_n or_o glory_n whatsoever_o why_o because_o that_o be_v but_o the_o sun_n beam_n of_o life_n eternal_a shine_v in_o they_o but_o as_o most_o due_a be_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o light_n they_o may_v return_v all_o praise_n and_o glory_n unto_o that_o infinite_a majesty_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n without_o they_o 3_o wherefore_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v or_o in_o he_o that_o run_v but_o in_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n also_o it_o be_v write_v to_o will_n be_v present_a but_o how_o to_o perform_v i_o know_v not_o also_o it_o be_v write_v every_o branch_n that_o bear_v not_o fruit_n in_o i_o he_o take_v away_o and_o every_o one_o that_o bear_v fruit_n he_o purge_v that_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o more_o fruit_n now_o you_o be_v clean_a through_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n 4_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o any_o man_n whether_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o his_o own_o body_n when_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n unto_o his_o apostle_n or_o disciple_n 5_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v it_o be_v which_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o reprobate_n than_o that_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v be_v the_o essential_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o a_o spiritual_a word_n proceed_v through_o his_o mouth_n from_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o infinite_a glory_n as_o it_o do_v former_o on_o this_o earth_n the_o footstool_n of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n 6_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o other_o spiritual_a god_n or_o christ_n but_o what_o dwell_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n then_o of_o necessity_n this_o must_v follow_v that_o every_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v a_o god_n or_o christ_n to_o himself_o 7_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o many_o thousand_o shall_v be_v so_o easy_o persuade_v of_o attain_v to_o a_o perfection_n in_o this_o mortality_n if_o they_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 8_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n o●_n creator_n but_o within_o man_n only_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v for_o what_o end_n man_n so_o mighty_o contend_v with_o one_o another_o about_o a_o god_n or_o worship_n due_a unto_o he_o 9_o or_o why_o they_o vex_v
one_o another_o by_o writing_n or_o speaking_n unless_o they_o be_v hurry_v on_o for_o silver_n or_o a_o everlasting_a name_n 10_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n or_o christ_n but_o within_o man_n conscience_n only_o be_v it_o not_o one_o of_o the_o mad_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n for_o man_n to_o talk_v of_o rebellion_n against_o the_o divine_a majesty_n or_o of_o any_o cruelty_n act_v between_o man_n and_o man_n whatsoever_o 11_o be_v not_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n all_o wisdom_n power_n glory_n love_n meekness_n patience_n long-suffering_a justice_n righteousness_n yea_o salvation_n itself_o or_o condemnation_n to_o who_o it_o please_v for_o manifest_v the_o glory_n of_o its_o power_n 12_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o none_o can_v will_n or_o dare_v deny_v this_o truth_n but_o reprobate_n wherefore_o if_o the_o very_a spirit_n of_o god_n be_v live_v within_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n can_v there_o possible_o then_o be_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o godlike_a harmony_n between_o they_o 13_o be_v not_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o christ_n jesus_n in_o itself_o a_o glorious_a order_n and_o be_v not_o every_o man_n live_v at_o variance_n within_o himself_o and_o so_o at_o the_o best_a be_v but_o a_o disorderly_a piece_n of_o contradiction_n or_o confusion_n in_o himself_o 14_o if_o this_o be_v truth_n which_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o vain_a glorious_a cast_v aways_o how_o then_o think_v you_o it_o possible_a that_o any_o mortal_a man_n that_o be_v but_o pollute_a dust_n shall_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o if_o he_o enjoy_v the_o eternal_a spirit_n what_o can_v be_v in_o he_o but_o a_o glorious_a harmony_n 15_o if_o not_o create_v be_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n because_o of_o its_o incomprehensible_a glory_n but_o it_o be_v own_o body_n only_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v infinite_a what_o person_n place_n or_o creature_n can_v be_v exclude_v of_o its_o invisible_a presence_n from_o that_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a 16_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v a_o twofold_a invisible_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o all_o sensible_a or_o insensible_a being_n that_o have_v any_o light_n or_o virtue_n in_o they_o 17_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a presence_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o creation_n which_o shall_v perish_v and_o come_v to_o confusion_n for_o everlasting_a 18_o also_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o elect_a mankind_n by_o virtue_n of_o redemption_n which_o glorious_o increase_v and_o continue_v to_o all_o eternity_n 19_o again_o what_o ever_o natural_a wise_a man_n imagine_v or_o think_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o truth_n itself_o i_o declare_v that_o all_o create_v natural_a light_n life_n or_o joy_n both_o visible_a and_o invisible_a shall_v become_v utter_a darkness_n and_o a_o chaos_n of_o everlasting_a confusion_n because_o though_o it_o make_v not_o itself_o it_o be_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o spirit_n that_o make_v it_o as_o light_v and_o darkness_n or_o life_n and_o death_n 20_o who_o ever_o thou_o be_v unto_o who_o this_o seem_v strange_a if_o thou_o be_v in_o nature_n as_o wise_a as_o solomon_n yet_o if_o thou_o have_v no_o distinction_n in_o thou_o between_o this_o natural_a perish_a god_n of_o time_n and_o that_o spiritual_a flourish_a god_n of_o eternity_n as_o yet_o thou_o be_v in_o utter_a darkness_n concern_v any_o heavenly_a thing_n whatsoever_o 21_o though_o all_o natural_a or_o spiritual_a light_n do_v virtual_o flow_v from_o the_o divine_a spirit_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n yet_o if_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v not_o a_o glorious_a be_v distinct_a from_o all_o create_a being_n it_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v infinite_a 22_o why_o because_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o infinite_a life_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o bigness_n or_o bulk_n of_o thing_n but_o in_o its_o exceed_a brightness_n of_o wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n in_o itself_o in_o that_o it_o can_v contain_v its_o infinite_a brightness_n within_o its_o own_o person_n only_o or_o let_v forth_o his_o inshining_a glory_n by_o degree_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o elect_a man_n or_o angel_n as_o it_o please_v he_o 23_o though_o all_o light_n or_o life_n in_o man_n or_o angel_n proceed_v from_o the_o natural_a or_o divine_a presence_n of_o the_o one_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n himself_o yet_o if_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v essential_o unite_v unto_o those_o creature_n it_o can_v not_o possible_o then_o be_v infinite_a 24_o to_o be_v essential_o dwell_v within_o all_o live_a thing_n be_v not_o infiniteness_n but_o finitness_n but_o as_o beforesaid_a to_o be_v a_o glorious_a be_v in_o itself_o in_o the_o bigness_n of_o man_n and_o essential_o distinct_a from_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n and_o man_n and_o yet_o from_o so_o small_a a_o compass_n though_o at_o never_o so_o small_a a_o distance_n all_o create_a being_n in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n to_o be_v virtual_o fill_v with_o his_o divine_a or_o natural_a presence_n in_o their_o measure_n according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o good_a will_n by_o a_o word_n speak_v in_o this_o be_v all_o infiniteness_n indeed_o 25_o if_o there_o be_v no_o god_n or_o creator_n at_o all_o but_o what_o do_v live_v increated_a being_n than_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o all_o being_n and_o their_o indwelling_a god_n may_v eternal_o vanish_v together_o because_o there_o be_v that_o in_o they_o which_o be_v more_o natural_a to_o provoke_v they_o all_o to_o murder_v one_o another_o and_o kill_v themselves_o than_o the_o good_a of_o one_o another_o for_o alas_o you_o know_v that_o it_o be_v both_o a_o common_a and_o easy_a thing_n oftentimes_o with_o small_a mean_n for_o man_n to_o destroy_v themselves_o or_o one_o another_o and_o be_v it_o not_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n as_o easy_a total_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o the_o creation_n at_o once_o 26_o if_o this_o be_v truth_n which_o no_o sober_a man_n can_v deny_v what_o then_o will_v become_v of_o man_n and_o their_o christ_n if_o this_o total_a dissolution_n at_o once_o shall_v fall_v upon_o they_o 27_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v so_o infinite_o vast_a boundless_a or_o that_o it_o be_v both_o the_o light_n and_o life_n of_o all_o spiritual_a or_o natural_a thing_n or_o place_n whatsoever_o as_o be_v abundant_o declare_v some_o unsatisfy_a man_n in_o this_o point_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o that_o to_o confine_v this_o incomprehensible_a spirit_n of_o the_o omnipresent_v god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n into_o one_o single_a person_n and_o place_n at_o once_o like_a unto_o a_o poor_a mortal_a man_n seem_v unto_o we_o a_o imprison_n of_o infiniteness_n into_o a_o narrow_a compass_n instead_o of_o declare_v its_o incomprehensible_a glory_n from_o a_o divine_a gift_n of_o life_n eternal_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v 28_o be_v it_o not_o rather_o a_o imprison_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n and_o rob_v he_o whole_o of_o his_o infinite_a glory_n for_o any_o man_n to_o divide_v his_o most_o bless_a majesty_n into_o distinct_a person_n or_o to_o divide_v his_o godhead_n spirit_n into_o all_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n leave_v no_o throne_n or_o person_n for_o the_o divine_a glory_n to_o be_v in_o but_o his_o create_a being_n only_o 29_o in_o stead_n of_o honour_v that_o spirit_n within_o the_o glorious_a person_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n do_v not_o those_o man_n that_o affirm_v the_o indwel_n of_o that_o infinite_a spirit_n in_o the_o whole_a creation_n not_o only_o share_v the_o divine_a glory_n and_o godhead_n title_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n among_o the_o lie_a creature_n but_o also_o whole_o deny_v any_o other_o creator_n or_o eternal_a spirit_n within_o or_o without_o man_n but_o perish_v nature_n only_o whatever_o they_o pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a 30_o what_o dishonour_n or_o disadvantage_n be_v it_o unto_o a_o infinite_a spirit_n to_o possess_v his_o ravish_a glory_n to_o himself_o within_o a_o distinct_a body_n of_o his_o own_o nay_o be_v it_o not_o altogether_o advantageous_a unto_o his_o divine_a majesty_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o other_o way_n for_o alas_o you_o know_v that_o it_o stand_v to_o good_a sense_n or_o reason_n that_o if_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n be_v only_o a_o invisible_a spirit_n dwell_v within_o the_o creation_n he_o can_v not_o the●_n possess_v any_o new_a joy_n or_o ravish_a glory_n to_o himself_o but_o the_o whole_a creation_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n must_v be_v partaker_n with_o he_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o 31_o therefore_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o those_o man_n that_o talk_v of_o a_o
a_o signification_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o form_n of_o a_o something_o that_o be_v infinite_a 10_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o pure_a light_n itself_o unto_o you_o that_o be_v experimental_o spiritual_a that_o it_o be_v not_o name_n word_n or_o title_n prove_v god_n or_o man_n to_o be_v any_o live_a being_n at_o all_o except_o they_o be_v distinct_a person_n to_o manifest_v their_o honourable_a name_n as_o proceed_v from_o comprehensible_a something_n and_o not_o from_o incomprehensible_a nothing_o 11_o if_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n in_o scripture_n record_n shall_v be_v call_v not_o only_o by_o three_o divine_a title_n but_o by_o threescore_o thousand_o holy_a name_n also_o yet_o all_o the_o man_n in_o this_o world_n or_o angel_n in_o that_o world_n to_o come_v can_v never_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v a_o infinite_a spirit_n without_o a_o body_n or_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v any_o more_o than_o only_o one_o distinct_a glorious_a person_n also_o 12_o you_o heavenly_a one_o may_v also_o know_v that_o the_o divine_a majesty_n be_v call_v in_o scripture_n record_v by_o three_o divine_a title_n that_o as_o beforesaid_a that_o the_o most_o learned_a prudent_a man_n in_o this_o world_n may_v never_o attain_v to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o very_a true_a god_n and_o the_o spiritual_a mystery_n of_o his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n by_o all_o their_o rational_a study_n in_o the_o scripture_n record_n or_o any_o other_o way_n and_o that_o be_v the_o very_a cause_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n say_v unto_o his_o own_o spiritual_a power_n represent_v by_o angelical_a moses_n and_o elias_n i_o thank_v thou_o father_n that_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a and_o have_v reveal_v they_o to_o babe_n and_o suckling_n 13._o concern_v that_o threefold_a title_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n in_o stead_n of_o three_o person_n as_o of_o long_a time_n by_o blind_a guide_n have_v be_v imagine_v do_v it_o not_o rather_o stand_v to_o better_a sense_n that_o the_o word_n father_n have_v reference_n unto_o the_o godhead_n spirit_n eternal_o unite_v unto_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n 14_o and_o that_o the_o word_n son_n have_v relation_n unto_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o the_o everliving_a emanuel_n which_o be_v visible_o see_v by_o elect_a angel_n moses_n and_o elias_n 15_o and_o that_o word_n holy_a ghost_n have_v reference_n unto_o a_o divine_a word_n of_o light_n life_n or_o power_n proceed_v from_o the_o invisible_a father_n through_o the_o glorious_a mouth_n of_o the_o visible_a son_n into_o the_o invisible_a spirit_n of_o elect_a mankind_n to_o the_o enlighten_v of_o their_o dark_a understanding_n and_o purify_n of_o their_o fleshly_a mind_n 16_o thus_o you_o which_o be_v true_o enlighten_v from_o above_o may_v clear_o see_v what_o that_o threefold_a heavenly_a record_n signify_v of_o that_o only_a distinct_a personal_a majesty_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n god_n alone_o bless_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n 17_o it_o be_v also_o as_o clear_a to_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a as_o the_o light_n itself_o that_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n can_v not_o possible_o be_v three_o distinct_a person_n or_o spirit_n in_o one_o godhead_n be_v or_o any_o such_o like_a confuse_a deity_n 18_o you_o know_v that_o wheresoever_o the_o scripture_n exact_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n it_o attribute_n all_o honour_n praise_n and_o glory_n unto_o he_o always_o in_o the_o fingular_a number_n as_o unto_o one_o distinct_a personal_a majesty_n or_o glorious_a be_v and_o not_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n of_o three_o distinct_a person_n or_o spirit_n in_o one_o body_n as_o have_v be_v long_o imagine_v by_o deceiver_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n so_o call_v which_o be_v in_o bondage_n to_o their_o confuse_a god_n and_o invent_v formality_n 19_o you_o know_v that_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o many_o several_a thing_n the_o scripture_n run_v in_o such_o a_o line_n as_o this_o to_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n or_o unto_o god_n only_o wise_a or_o though_o there_o be_v that_o be_v call_v many_o god_n or_o many_o lord_n yet_o unto_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n or_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n and_o such_o like_a 20_o you_o know_v because_o there_o be_v none_o above_o a_o king_n or_o head_n magistrate_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n or_o equal_a with_o he_o upon_o a_o extraordinary_a occasion_n he_o will_v swear_v by_o himself_o or_o by_o the_o faith_n or_o word_n of_o a_o king_n 21_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o that_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n because_o there_o be_v none_o above_o he_o or_o beside_o he_o or_o equal_a with_o he_o in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n he_o swear_v by_o himself_o concern_v the_o transmutation_n of_o his_o uncreated_a glory_n and_o everlasting_a spiritual_a priesthood_n into_o a_o pure_a body_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n 22_o before_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n be_v descend_v into_o the_o virgin_n womb_n you_o know_v he_o have_v many_o holy_a name_n attribute_v unto_o he_o wherefore_o you_o may_v also_o know_v from_o all_o eternity_n he_o be_v a_o distinct_a divine_a person_n and_o not_o a_o infinite_a formless_a spirit_n as_o most_o man_n blind_o imagine_v 23_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v also_o know_v before_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o flesh_n it_o be_v not_o the_o holy_a name_n of_o creator_n infinite_a spirit_n jehovah_n ancient_n of_o day_n mighty_a god_n lord_n of_o host_n redeemer_n holy_a one_o of_o israel_n king_n of_o glory_n or_o everlasting_a father_n or_o any_o glorious_a expression_n that_o can_v be_v utter_v by_o the_o tongue_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o can_v prove_v any_o god_n at_o all_o except_o he_o be_v a_o divine_a person_n distinct_a from_o heaven_n earth_n water_n angel_n man_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o 24_o that_o the_o one_o personal_a infinite_a majesty_n may_v remain_v in_o the_o heavenly_a centre_n of_o his_o own_o uncreated_a glory_n and_o all_o being_n that_o he_o have_v form_v to_o live_v in_o his_o sight_n may_v continue_v in_o their_o own_o creature_o station_n for_o a_o everlasting_a distinction_n between_o the_o glorious_a creator_n and_o poor_a changeable_a creature_n 25_o thus_o by_o a_o free_a gift_n receive_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n in_o simplicity_n of_o spirit_n and_o plainness_n of_o speech_n in_o a_o small_a measure_n i_o have_v declare_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n in_o those_o literal_a expression_n for_o there_o be_v three_o which_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o chap._n xxi_o of_o a_o threefold_a record_n of_o natural_a witness_n proceed_v from_o the_o bless_a person_n of_o christ_n at_o his_o death_n i_o shall_v write_v a_o little_a of_o a_o threefold_a record_n in_o that_o most_o pure_a natural_a body_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v on_o this_o earth_n in_o relation_n unto_o the_o threefold_a record_n of_o his_o spiritual_a body_n in_o the_o invisible_a heaven_n before_o say_v in_o the_o 53._o of_o isaiah_n it_o be_v write_v he_o pour_v forth_o or_o out_o his_o soul_n unto_o death_n and_o in_o the_o 19_o chap._n by_o s._n john_n you_o may_v find_v it_o thus_o write_v but_o one_o of_o the_o soldier_n with_o a_o spear_n pierce_v his_o side_n and_o forthwith_o come_v there_o blood_n and_o water_n here_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v may_v clear_o see_v a_o threefold_a record_n of_o natural_a witness_n proceed_v from_o that_o bless_a person_n of_o our_o only_a god_n and_o saviour_n at_o his_o voluntary_a death_n 2_o as_o namely_o blood_n water_n and_o spirit_n wherefore_o his_o most_o precious_a soul_n pour_v forth_o itself_o unto_o death_n that_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o everlasting_a father_n in_o flesh_n 3_o the_o issue_v forth_o of_o the_o unvaluable_a blood_n that_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n in_o flesh_n 4_o the_o flow_v forth_o of_o the_o water_n that_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o erernal_a spirit_n in_o flesh_n on_o earth_n 5_o these_o saying_n be_v not_o only_o hard_a but_o intolerable_a to_o be_v bear_v by_o curse_a oanaanites_n which_o understand_v nothing_o true_o of_o the_o power_n of_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n 6_o nevertheless_o unto_o you_o which_o be_v make_v to_o understand_v the_o deep_a and_o hide_a mystery_n of_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o powerful_a creator_n do_v not_o this_o answer_n these_o scripture_n saying_n 7_o i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o and_o from_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v that_o faithful_a witness_n and_o that_o first_o beget_v of_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o
earth_n unto_o he_o that_o love_v we_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n will_v pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v clean_a he_o die_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n 8_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v true_o enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a may_v see_v a_o little_a into_o that_o wonderful_a mystery_n of_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n imanife_v itself_o in_o earth_n answerable_a unto_o his_o threefold_a record_n in_o the_o heaven_n beforesaid_a 9_o three_o glorious_a word_n name_n title_n or_o distinction_n in_o reference_n unto_o one_o divine_a person_n only_o in_o a_o threefold_a manifestation_n of_o his_o spiritual_a glory_n unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n chap._n xxii_o 1_o of_o the_o three_o witness_n on_o earth_n 2_o of_o spirit_n water_n and_o blood_n 3_o the_o three_o record_n on_o earth_n be_v the_o three_o commission_n 4_o what_o the_o commission_n be_v see_v all_o spiritual_a power_n and_o wisdom_n in_o heaven_n above_o or_o in_o earth_n beneath_o be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v nor_o never_o be_v but_o only_o within_o the_o divine_a ark_n or_o spiritual_a person_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 2_o in_o the_o next_o place_n by_o his_o own_o light_n in_o some_o measure_n i_o shall_v remonstrate_v unto_o you_o that_o be_v capable_a what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o three_o witness_n of_o water_n blood_n and_o spirit_n in_o earth_n which_o agree_v in_o one_o unto_o which_o the_o forego_n word_n have_v relation_n of_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v but_o one_o 3_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n be_v not_o those_o three_o witness_n in_o earth_n the_o commissionated_a messenger_n which_o by_o voice_n or_o word_n through_o the_o glorious_a mouth_n of_o god_n himself_o be_v send_v forth_o unto_o a_o unbelieving_a bloody_a worldly_a mind_a people_n for_o a_o witness_n unto_o they_o to_o this_o purpose_n at_o the_o unexpected_a dreadful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 4_o do_v not_o that_o water_n witness_n in_o earth_n signify_v moses_n and_o the_o true_a prophet_n under_o the_o law_n in_o reference_n unto_o the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n 5_o do_v not_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o earth_n signify_v jesus_n and_o the_o choose_a apostle_n in_o relation_n of_o that_o heavenly_a name_n of_o god_n the_o eternal_a son_n 6_o do_v not_o that_o witness_n of_o holy_a ghost_n in_o earth_n signify_v those_o two_o witness_n in_o the_o 11._o of_o the_o revelation_n 7_o as_o water_n blood_n and_o spirit_n mix_v together_o be_v in_o a_o sweet_a harmony_n in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n in_o perfect_a health_n and_o through_o a_o defect_n of_o either_o of_o they_o the_o body_n can_v not_o subsist_v 8_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v with_o those_o witness_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n call_v spirit_n water_n and_o blood_n for_o these_o three_o sweet_o unite_v bear_a witness_n unto_o but_o one_o only_a wise_a distinct_a personal_a god_n glorify_v 9_o therefore_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o heavenly_a harmony_n and_o can_v possible_o be_v one_o without_o the_o other_o not_o only_o because_o they_o proceed_v from_o one_o glorious_a spirit_n but_o also_o because_o they_o three_o only_o by_o the_o secret_a wisdom_n of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n be_v choose_v to_o bear_v witness_n in_o earth_n before_o man_n and_o angel_n unto_o that_o threefold_a record_n in_o heaven_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n aforesaid_a 10_o but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n be_v witness_v unto_o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n already_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o this_o three_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o earth_n or_o what_o do_v it_o bear_v record_n unto_o 11_o from_o a_o divine_a gift_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v in_o many_o respect_n there_o be_v as_o much_o use_n of_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o this_o atheistical_a age_n as_o of_o the_o two_o former_a witness_n of_o water_n and_o blood_n 12_o to_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n which_o say_v heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o but_o his_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v away_o or_o not_o one_o title_n of_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v unfulfil_v 13_o how_o shall_v christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n of_o glory_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o only_a god_n of_o truth_n if_o there_o be_v not_o at_o one_o time_n or_o another_o a_o three_o witness_n in_o earth_n to_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n for_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v witness_n in_o earth_n 14_o another_o necessity_n of_o this_o three_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v this_o because_o you_o may_v know_v that_o there_o have_v not_o be_v above_o these_o thousand_o year_n a_o commissionated_a messenger_n send_v forth_o by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o bear_v witness_n unto_o that_o truth_n which_o the_o two_o former_a witness_n seal_v too_o with_o their_o blood_n 15_o another_o necessity_n of_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v this_o because_o of_o late_a and_o at_o present_a so_o many_o several_a antichristian_a spirit_n be_v come_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o their_o own_o strong_a imagination_n and_o cunning_a curse_a observation_n have_v act_v many_o visible_a lie_a sign_n and_o wonder_n upon_o their_o own_o body_n and_o other_o way_n to_o the_o ruine_n of_o many_o a_o poor_a deceive_v soul_n in_o body_n mind_n and_o personal_a estate_n all_o of_o they_o pretend_v when_o those_o fleshly_a fit_n come_v upon_o they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n immediate_o move_v they_o chap_n xxiii_o 1_o of_o several_a empty_a opinion_n concern_v the_o two_o witness_n in_o the_o eleven_o of_o the_o revelation_n 2_o what_o they_o be_v 3_o no_o true_a witness_n without_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n 4_o who_o be_v the_o two_o last_o spiritual_a witness_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v write_v somewhat_o of_o man_n empty_a opinion_n concern_v the_o two_o witness_n in_o the_o revelation_n for_o your_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o ensue_a truth_n some_o man_n have_v imagine_v they_o to_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n 2_o now_o you_o may_v know_v that_o can_v be_v because_o the_o spirit_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o glorify_v together_o in_o the_o high_a heaven_n long_o before_o john_n prophesy_v of_o the_o two_o witness_n stand_v before_o the_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 3_o other_o there_o be_v that_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v the_o literal_a law_n and_o gospel_n now_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v also_o know_v that_o can_v be_v the_o witness_n here_o speak_v of_o because_o without_o a_o true_a interpreter_n the_o scripture_n in_o itself_o be_v but_o a_o kill_a letter_n 4_o you_o know_v that_o the_o invisible_a truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n proceed_v only_o from_o a_o true_a light_n receive_v from_o the_o spiritual_a person_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n in_o the_o throne_n of_o immortal_a glory_n 5_o you_o know_v that_o from_o the_o bare_a record_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o only_a very_o true_a god_n or_o the_o spiritual_a mystery_n of_o his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o that_o be_v the_o very_a cause_n of_o these_o and_o such_o like_a scripture_n say_n i_o thank_v thou_o father_n that_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a and_o have_v reveal_v they_o to_o babe_n make_v the_o heart_n of_o this_o people_n fat_a which_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o car_n and_o hear_v not_o heart_n and_o understand_v not_o and_o why_o so_o to_o fulfil_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v through_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n 6_o if_o the_o two_o witness_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o need_v then_o will_v there_o be_v of_o the_o invisible_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n 7_o for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v not_o the_o minister_n and_o people_n set_v up_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o offer_v divine_a worship_n unto_o they_o as_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n worship_v their_o golden_a calf_n 8_o the_o two_o witness_n can_v be_v mean_v the_o literal_a scripture_n because_o it_o be_v say_v if_o any_o man_n will_v hurt_v they_o fire_n proceed_v out_o of_o their_o mouth_n and_o devour_v their_o enemy_n and_o if_o any_o hurt_v they_o in_o this_o manner_n they_o must_v be_v kill_v 9_o now_o you_o may_v know_v that_o at_o this_o very_a present_a there_o be_v many_o thousand_o in_o these_o three_o nation_n that_o do_v not_o only_o count_v the_o scripture_n mere_a invention_n of_o wise_a man_n to_o keep_v the_o
the_o mind_n of_o christ_n from_o john_n word_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 11._o chapter_n the_o first_o word_n be_v these_o then_o be_v give_v i_o a_o reed_n like_o unto_o a_o rod_n and_o the_o angel_n stand_v by_o say_v rise_v and_o measure_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o but_o the_o court_n which_o be_v without_o the_o temple_n leave_v out_o and_o measure_v it_o not_o for_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o holy_a city_n shall_v they_o tread_v under_o foot_n forty_o and_o two_o month_n 21_o my_o divine_a friend_n you_o may_v understand_v that_o that_o reed_n like_o unto_o a_o rod_n possess_v by_o john_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n of_o inspiration_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o a_o glorify_a christ_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n by_o his_o angel_n whereby_o like_a unto_o a_o skilful_a land-measure_a his_o understanding_n be_v enable_v to_o comprehend_v the_o spiritual_a signification_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o 22_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o the_o temple_n and_o they_o that_o do_v worship_n therein_o do_v signify_v god_n spiritual_a house_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o elect_a jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o make_v but_o one_o complete_a body_n for_o christ_n jesus_n their_o head_n to_o reign_v in_o by_o his_o heavenly_a light_n 23_o that_o altar_n speak_v of_o by_o john_n do_v signify_v the_o glorious_a body_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n unto_o which_o divine_a altar_n or_o godhead_n person_n those_o spiritual_a worshipper_n be_v virtual_o unite_v by_o a_o receive_a light_n from_o that_o infinite_a majesty_n through_o which_o invisible_a intercourse_n sometime_o their_o soul_n be_v full_a of_o spiritual_a joy_n through_o that_o inward_a seal_n of_o godlike_a glory_n which_o they_o be_v to_o enjoy_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 24_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o that_o unmeasured_a court_n without_o the_o temple_n do_v signify_v the_o visible_a scripture_n 25_o you_o know_v that_o when_o sacrifice_n or_o ordinance_n be_v in_o force_n at_o jerusalem_n there_o be_v the_o inward_a temple_n and_o outward_a porch_n or_o court_n join_v to_o the_o temple_n 26_o you_o also_o know_v the_o court_n without_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o common_a place_n for_o all_o people_n to_o meet_v in_o but_o none_o may_v enter_v into_o the_o inward_a temple_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o worship_n but_o the_o chief_a priest_n or_o those_o that_o be_v confessor_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o approve_v of_o by_o those_o teacher_n of_o the_o law_n 27_o likewise_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o outward_a court_n or_o scripture_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n that_o be_v leave_v unmeasured_a or_o cast_v out_o do_v signify_v all_o the_o outcast_a unbelieving_a jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o the_o inward_a temple_n or_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v signify_v all_o the_o elect_a believe_v jew_n and_o gentile_n in_o that_o glorious_a altar_n beforesaid_a 28_o again_o you_o know_v that_o the_o court_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o outward_a ornament_n or_o witness_n unto_o the_o beauty_n or_o glory_n within_o the_o temple_n 29_o so_o likewise_o the_o court_n of_o the_o visible_a scripture_n be_v a_o ornament_n or_o testimony_n unto_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o all_o truth_n within_o the_o temple_n body_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n and_o virtual_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n live_v in_o the_o temple_n or_o body_n of_o his_o elect_a that_o be_v enable_v to_o give_v a_o true_a distinction_n between_o the_o thing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o eternal_a death_n 30_o again_o you_o know_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o unmeasured_a court_n without_o the_o temple_n be_v give_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v tread_v the_o holy_a city_n under_o foot_n two_o and_o forty_o month_n 31_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v know_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o those_o word_n be_v this_o that_o to_o fulfil_v the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jew_n their_o temple_n and_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o roman_n through_o conquest_n they_o shall_v possess_v the_o literal_a record_n write_v by_o the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a jew_n and_o not_o only_o worship_v it_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n but_o also_o by_o cruel_a persecution_n for_o above_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n be_v to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o spiritual_a jew_n and_o gentile_n that_o can_v not_o bow_v down_o unto_o their_o invention_n 32_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o roman_a gentile_n here_o speak_v of_o by_o john_n be_v those_o people_n which_o man_n call_v cavalier_n who_o princely_a race_n spring_v first_o from_o the_o loin_n of_o king_n herod_n that_o bloody_a persecutor_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o so_o stream_v into_o the_o line_n of_o the_o tyrannical_a roman_a empire_n or_o popedom_n 33_o from_o this_o papal_a power_n whatever_o apostical_a or_o christian_a stile_n they_o attribute_v to_o themselves_o through_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n so_o call_v they_o have_v band_v together_o as_o one_o man_n to_o tread_v underfoot_o as_o beforesaid_a that_o choose_a city_n of_o heavenly_a mind_a jew_n and_o gentile_n 34_o because_o their_o innocent_a soul_n can_v not_o forsake_v that_o everliving_a altar_n manifest_v unto_o they_o and_o bow_v down_o to_o their_o egyptian_n calf_n set_v up_o as_o a_o snare_n unto_o the_o people_n chief_o for_o fleshly_a gain_n and_o perish_a glory_n from_o man_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n 35_o also_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a take_v special_a notice_n of_o this_o that_o these_o two_o witness_n or_o prophet_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o 11._o of_o the_o revelation_n do_v not_o appear_v unto_o man_n until_o the_o gentile_a power_n of_o persecute_v bishop_n be_v extinguish_v in_o this_o land_n 36_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v by_o some_o that_o one_o bull_n and_o varnum_n and_o other_o long_o before_o they_o have_v pretend_v to_o be_v these_o two_o witness_n and_o yet_o it_o come_v to_o nothing_o 37_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o query_n can_v any_o man_n make_v it_o appear_v from_o any_o record_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o in_o any_o land_n or_o nation_n two_o man_n do_v ever_o bear_v witness_n in_o all_o opposition_n of_o all_o man_n or_o angel_n unto_o the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n glorify_v to_o be_v the_o only_a god_n everlasting_a father_n and_o creator_n of_o both_o world_n angel_n and_o man_n 38_o again_o among_o all_o the_o pretend_a prophet_n in_o the_o world_n do_v any_o of_o they_o bear_v witness_n unto_o one_o personal_a majesty_n distinct_a from_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n and_o man_n 39_o nay_o of_o the_o contrary_a do_v they_o not_o all_o rather_o disow_v such_o a_o god_n as_o a_o weak_a or_o carnal_a thing_n and_o as_o one_o man_n like_o unto_o baal_n four_o hundred_o priest_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n and_o priest_n in_o all_o age_n imagine_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v a_o infinite_a formless_a spirit_n 40_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v moderate_o inquire_v of_o the_o pretend_a prophet_n or_o spiritual_a light_n in_o this_o age_n concern_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n or_o a_o glory_n to_o come_v be_v there_o any_o answer_n to_o be_v have_v from_o they_o but_o this_o or_o such_o like_a the_o creator_n be_v a_o infinite_a invisible_a unchangeable_a eternal_a spirit_n or_o else_o they_o will_v say_v the_o creator_n be_v all_o wisdom_n love_n purity_n riches_n beauty_n joy_n righteousness_n justice_n or_o divine_a excellency_n he_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n he_o be_v the_o all_o in_o all_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o beside_o he_o or_o else_o they_o will_v say_v the_o more_o you_o desire_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n the_o less_o you_o will_v know_v of_o he_o because_o he_o be_v infinite_a or_o they_o will_v bid_v you_o mind_n that_o god_n or_o choist_a within_o you_o and_o trouble_v not_o yourself_o about_o incomprehensible_a infiniteness_n thus_o these_o false_a prophet_n of_o curse_a cain_n make_v a_o wonderment_n of_o a_o infinite_a creator_n of_o nothing_o but_o mere_a word_n only_o 41_o thou_o which_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o such_o a_o creator_n as_o this_o be_v shall_v one_o day_n know_v to_o thy_o eternal_a sorrow_n and_o shame_n what_o it_o be_v to_o despise_v a_o personal_a god_n infinite_o full_a of_o all_o glorious_a perfection_n 42_o when_o this_o personal_a majesty_n shall_v show_v his_o infinite_a power_n upon_o thou_o through_o the_o retain_v of_o his_o inshining_a light_n from_o thy_o lucephe●ian_a spirlt_n and_o shall_v leave_v thou_o and_o thy_o inward_a god_n in_o a_o unspeakable_a condition_n of_o eternal_a shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o sell_a and_o
eternity_n a_o distinct_a glory_n be_v it_o not_o of_o necessity_n that_o this_o everliving_a be_v shall_v be_v a_o glorious_a something_o 16_o be_v it_o not_o both_o lawful_a and_o expedient_a also_o for_o a_o man_n according_a to_o sobriety_n to_o declare_v unto_o his_o spiritual_a and_o natural_a brethren_n what_o this_o glorious_a god_n be_v and_o be_v that_o man_n be_v send_v forth_o by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n for_o that_o very_a end_n or_o purpose_n 17_o do_v not_o all_o man_n which_o confess_v a_o creator_n conclude_v positive_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o no_o more_o 18_o if_o this_o one_o god_n be_v a_o infinite_a distinct_a spiritual_a substance_n before_o any_o create_v be_v appear_v to_o themselves_o be_v it_o not_o of_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n that_o he_o shall_v abide_v in_o his_o own_o divine_a centre_n and_o so_o continue_v a_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v to_o all_o eternity_n for_o a_o everlasting_a distinction_n between_o the_o unchangeable_a creator_n and_o the_o changeable_a creature_n 19_o do_v not_o all_o man_n which_o acknowledge_v this_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v conclude_v he_o to_o be_v a_o infinite_a eternal_a unchangeable_a spirit_n and_o do_v they_o not_o conclude_v this_o incomprehensible_a spirit_n to_o be_v a_o eternal_a godhead_n be_v in_o itself_o and_o so_o of_o necessity_n must_v he_o not_o be_v a_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v from_o all_o thing_n and_o place_n 20_o if_o there_o be_v a_o creator_n and_o if_o this_o glorious_a creator_n be_v a_o infinite_a distinct_a something_o too_o transcendent_o divine_a to_o be_v essential_o unite_v unto_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n or_o man_n which_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o conceit_a notionalist_n or_o literal_a hypocrite_n be_v not_o those_o man_n as_o yet_o utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n which_o imagine_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v a_o infinite_a formless_a spirit_n essential_o unite_v unto_o the_o whole_a creation_n utter_o hate_v that_o god_n that_o be_v a_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v to_o himself_o 21_o again_o if_o the_o eternal_a be_v be_v a_o infinite_a spirit_n can_v that_o glorious_a spirit_n be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o without_o it_o be_v endue_v with_o variety_n of_o divine_a qualification_n 22_o be_v not_o that_o infinite_a spirit_n and_o its_o glorious_a property_n but_o only_o one_o essence_n or_o godhead_n substance_n 23_o be_v not_o every_o virtue_n in_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n infinite_a 24_o be_v that_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o its_o heavenly_a virtue_n any_o thing_n else_o but_o immortal_a crown_n of_o bright_a burn_a glory_n 25_o can_v this_o infinite_a spiritual_a glory_n be_v sensible_a of_o its_o divine_a excellency_n or_o be_v a_o perfect_a blessedness_n except_o he_o have_v a_o distinct_a body_n suitable_a unto_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o enjoy_v his_o divine_a pleasure_n to_o himself_o and_o at_o his_o pleasure_n to_o distribute_v by_o measure_n into_o the_o elect_a spirit_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n the_o in-shining_a glimpse_n of_o this_o incomprehensible_a glory_n 26_o though_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v that_o invisible_a god_n that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o its_o almighty_a word_n have_v create_v all_o thing_n either_o for_o a_o time_n or_o for_o eternity_n into_o that_o glorious_a order_n they_o now_o appear_v to_o be_v yet_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o without_o a_o body_n face_n or_o tongue_n his_o glorious_a spirit_n can_v not_o possible_o have_v speak_v any_o distinct_a word_n at_o all_o no_o more_o than_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v speak_v distinct_a word_n without_o a_o body_n face_n or_o tongue_n of_o their_o own_o 27_o though_o all_o power_n wisdom_n and_o glory_n proceed_v only_o from_o a_o invisible_a eternal_a spirit_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o it_o can_v be_v a_o perfect_a glory_n except_o it_o be_v clothe_v with_o a_o majestical_a person_n as_o a_o visible_a ornament_n for_o man_n and_o angel_n to_o behold_v face_n to_o face_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n no_o more_o than_o the_o invisible_a spirit_n of_o earthly_a monarch_n can_v be_v complete_a without_o natural_a body_n or_o person_n for_o their_o subject_n behold_v they_o face_n to_o face_n 28_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o create_v by_o any_o bodily_a labour_n or_o painful_a study_n of_o the_o glorious_a creator_n 29_o yet_o without_o a_o distinct_a heavenly_a body_n there_o be_v nothing_o make_v that_o be_v make_v neither_o possible_o can_v be_v what_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v imagine_v to_o the_o contrary_n 30_o so_o much_o at_o present_a concern_v that_o one_o personal_a majesty_n or_o incomprehensible_a be_v of_o all_o being_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o change_v or_o to_o be_v change_v at_o his_o divine_a pleasure_n 31_o o_o blessed_a only_o be_v all_o you_o that_o have_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o own_o glorious_a personal_a god_n abide_v in_o you_o chap._n xxvii_o 1_o a_o more_o full_a discourse_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n 2._o no_o true_a messenger_n or_o witness_n without_o a_o voice_n from_o god_n to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o ear_n 3_o the_o three_o commission_n agree_v all_o in_o truth_n 4_o differ_v only_o in_o point_n of_o worship_n 5_o there_o be_v not_o nor_o can_v there_o be_v assurance_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n but_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o commission_n 5_o god_n ow_v no_o worship_n in_o this_o commission_n but_o what_o be_v spiritual_a 6_o the_o difference_n between_o true_a and_o false_a commissioner_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v treat_v again_o concern_v the_o witness_n according_a to_o former_a intention_n you_o may_v remember_v where_o i_o cease_v i_o challenge_v the_o whole_a world_n whether_o since_o the_o primitive_a time_n any_o man_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o bear_v record_n unto_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n in_o glory_n to_o be_v the_o only_a wise_a god_n creator_n redeemer_n and_o everlasting_a father_n appear_v as_o the_o two_o revelation-witness_n 2_o again_o until_o the_o roman_a bishop_n persecute_v tyranny_n be_v expire_v in_o this_o land_n you_o may_v know_v the_o two_o revelation-witness_n or_o prophet_n never_o appear_v 3_o for_o according_a unto_o scripture_n order_n you_o that_o be_v of_o a_o spiritual_a comprehension_n may_v know_v that_o we_o be_v those_o two_o commissionated_a witness_n or_o prophet_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n because_o as_o beforesaid_a 4_o according_a to_o the_o pprophecy_n by_o saint_n john_n we_o exact_o appear_v when_o the_o roman_a bishop_n time_n be_v expire_v of_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n or_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o this_o land_n 5_o some_o man_n may_v object_v and_o say_v why_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o two_o in_o number_n and_o the_o former_a witness_n of_o so_o great_a a_o number_n unto_o this_o objection_n from_o the_o lord_n i_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o quere_z do_v not_o the_o glorious_a wisdom_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n most_o of_o all_o appear_v in_o the_o small_a number_n of_o thing_n for_o the_o act_n of_o a_o wonderful_a work_n 6_o be_v it_o not_o most_o advantageous_a unto_o the_o creator_n glory_n to_o prevent_v man_n or_o angel_n from_o know_v his_o witness_n or_o their_o number_n either_o by_o miracle_n or_o without_o miracle_n until_o his_o pleasure_n be_v to_o reveal_v they_o 7_o you_o know_v that_o god_n worship_n former_o be_v not_o only_o invisible_a but_o visible_a also_o and_o to_o continue_v for_o a_o long_a season_n therefore_o there_o require_v a_o great_a number_n of_o spiritual_a speaker_n unto_o the_o elect_a 8_o but_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v now_o only_o spiritual_a or_o invisible_a thou_o may_v know_v that_o a_o witness_n or_o two_o be_v sufficient_a the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v near_o at_o hand_n to_o proclaim_v his_o glorious_a come_n by_o speak_v or_o write_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n 8_o again_o be_v not_o a_o witness_n or_o two_o sufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o vanity_n of_o all_o vain_a glorious_a fleshly_a formality_n among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n see_v the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n to_o make_v a_o eternal_a separation_n between_o the_o bless_a israelite_n and_o the_o curse_a canaanites_n 9_o do_v not_o these_o three_o witness_n in_o earth_n only_o agree_v in_o one_o divine_a body_n of_o all_o truth_n in_o this_o respect_n because_o they_o receive_v their_o commission_n by_o voice_n of_o word_n to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o visible_a as_o well_o as_o invisible_a ear_n through_o the_o glorious_a mouth_n of_o a_o personal_a majesty_n 10_o wherefore_o can_v any_o man_n upon_o this_o earth_n that_o count_v himself_o or_o be_v account_v by_o other_o to_o be_v a_o true_a prophet_n apostle_n minister_n preacher_n teacher_n bishop_n shepherd_z priest_n ambassador_n or_o witness_v from_o
he_o where_o he_o call_v they_o serpent_n and_o generation_n of_o viper_n and_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o how_o shall_v you_o escape_v the_o damnation_n of_o hell_n and_o such_o like_a 39_o again_o concern_v those_o word_n you_o will_v not_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o divine_a will_n or_o pleasure_n of_o god_n in_o his_o prophet_n do_v spiritual_o contend_v with_o the_o carnal_a spirit_n of_o the_o legal_a jew_n answerable_a to_o their_o curse_a imagination_n of_o have_v power_n in_o their_o own_o rational_a will_n to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o shall_v command_v they_o 40_o if_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o most_o pure_a reason_n be_v nothing_o but_o unsatisfactory_a weakness_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o why_o then_o do_v the_o scripture_n call_v they_o christ_n mighty_a angel_n from_o the_o true_a light_n of_o life_n eternal_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v by_o a_o comparison_n if_o man_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o great_a monarch_n in_o the_o world_n for_o his_o society_n that_o they_o may_v be_v always_o ready_a to_o obey_v his_o will_n in_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v command_v they_o when_o they_o have_v receive_v a_o commission_n from_o his_o own_o mouth_n to_o execute_v vengeance_n upon_o rebel_n their_o town_n city_n or_o castle_n in_o his_o dominion_n you_o know_v they_o appear_v mighty_a or_o dreadful_a unto_o all_o his_o people_n as_o the_o king_n himself_o that_o send_v they_o 41_o so_o likewise_o you_o may_v know_v be_v be_v not_o in_o reference_n unto_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o angel_n nature_n that_o they_o be_v call_v mighty_a angel_n but_o because_o they_o be_v create_v not_o only_o to_o stand_v in_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n to_o behold_v his_o bright_a burn_a glory_n face_n to_o face_n but_o also_o to_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v commission_n from_o he_o to_o execute_v vengeance_n upon_o the_o person_n good_n town_n or_o castle_n of_o canaanitish_a rebel_n that_o be_v leave_v to_o despise_v his_o spiritual_a government_n or_o glorious_a truth_n declare_v through_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o choose_a messenger_n 42_o again_o though_o those_o man_n that_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o world_n monarch_n be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o most_o mighty_a noble_n on_o this_o earth_n yet_o you_o know_v that_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o be_v not_o very_o dreadful_a to_o behold_v until_o man_n know_v they_o have_v receive_v a_o commission_n of_o life_n and_o death_n from_o their_o mighty_a lord_n and_o master_n 43_o so_o likewise_o though_o the_o holy_a angel_n be_v call_v mighty_a because_o they_o stand_v in_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o the_o most_o infinite_a majesty_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o be_v not_o very_o dreadful_a to_o behold_v until_o they_o have_v receive_v a_o commission_n of_o life_n and_o death_n from_o their_o most_o mighty_a lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 44_o again_o you_o know_v that_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o eminent_a prince_n be_v not_o only_o look_v upon_o as_o honourable_a and_o mighty_a person_n because_o they_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o so_o powerful_a a_o prince_n but_o also_o because_o they_o inherit_v a_o temporal_a kingdom_n of_o such_o exceed_a vastness_n with_o variety_n of_o honour_n beauty_n riches_n or_o pleasure_n 45_o so_o likewise_o you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o the_o person_n of_o angel_n be_v not_o only_o call_v holy_a or_o mighty_a because_o they_o stand_v in_o the_o visible_a presence_n of_o so_o infinite_a a_o majesty_n but_o also_o because_o they_o inherit_v a_o kingdom_n of_o such_o infinite_a vastness_n and_o unspeakable_a fullness_n of_o all_o variety_n of_o ravish_a honour_n beauty_n riches_n or_o pleasure_n which_o be_v eternal_a 46_o again_o you_o know_v that_o the_o servant_n of_o a_o earthly_a monarch_n for_o the_o magnify_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o subject_n be_v clothe_v not_o only_o with_o or_o nament_n deck_v with_o silver_n gold_n precious_a stone_n or_o the_o like_a but_o their_o body_n also_o be_v anoint_v with_o precious_a odorus_fw-la and_o feed_v with_o the_o fine_a delicacy_n 47_o so_o likewise_o for_o exalt_v of_o the_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o the_o infinite_a god_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o obedient_a subject_n you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o person_n of_o the_o elect_a angel_n do_v not_o only_o shine_v bright_a than_o gold_n or_o any_o precious_a stone_n whatsoever_o but_o their_o body_n also_o be_v anoint_v with_o divine_a odour_n and_o their_o spirit_n be_v feed_v with_o glorious_a delicacy_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o continual_a inshining_a brightness_n proceed_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o make_v they_o 48_o so_o much_o at_o present_a between_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o undesiring_a satisfactory_a fullness_n in_o its_o own_o personal_a majesty_n and_o the_o rational_a spirit_n of_o unsatisfactory_a desire_n dwell_v in_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o the_o elect_a angel_n and_o why_o they_o be_v call_v mighty_a angel_n chap._n xxix_o 1_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o adam_n 2_o why_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n in_o the_o make_n of_o man_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v treat_v of_o the_o create_a purity_n of_o the_o first_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o ever_o be_v make_v that_o the_o heir_n of_o immortal_a crown_n may_v the_o more_o clear_a understand_v my_o ensue_a discourse_n in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v furthermore_o god_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n according_a to_o our_o likeness_n and_o let_v they_o rule_v over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o over_o the_o foul_a of_o the_o heaven_n and_o over_o the_o beast_n and_o over_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o over_o every_o thing_n that_o creep_v and_o move_v on_o the_o earth_n thus_o god_n create_v the_o man_n in_o his_o image_n in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n create_v he_o he_o he_o create_v they_o male_a and_o female_a the_o lord_n god_n also_o make_v the_o man_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o breathe_v into_o his_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o the_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n 2_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n i_o do_v not_o question_v your_o satisfaction_n concern_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n be_v but_o only_o one_o eternal_a personal_a majesty_n because_o not_o only_o the_o ridiculousness_n of_o three_o person_n in_o the_o deity_n be_v so_o full_o discover_v already_o in_o this_o epistle_n but_o because_o the_o true_a ground_n why_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n call_v himself_o by_o a_o threefold_a title_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n be_v clear_o manifest_v also_o 3_o before_o i_o write_v concern_v what_o that_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n creation_n be_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o reason_v a_o little_a upon_o those_o word_n let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o own_o likeness_n 4_o if_o thou_o which_o be_v so_o literal_o acute_a or_o exact_a do_v but_o sober_o mind_v the_o first_o and_o last_o word_n of_o the_o three_o scripture_n text_n together_o thou_o can_v not_o possible_o but_o be_v convince_v of_o thy_o trinitary_n error_n 5_o concern_v those_o first_o word_n furthermore_o god_n say_v have_v not_o those_o say_n relation_n unto_o the_o singular_a number_n only_o 6_o moreover_o though_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n according_a to_o our_o likeness_n it_o do_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n can_v possible_o consist_v of_o three_o personal_a being_n in_o coequal_a glory_n as_o man_n vain_o imagine_v 7_o again_o thou_o which_o little_a think_v that_o university_n tongue_n keep_v thou_o under_o spiritual_a darkness_n whether_o be_v it_o most_o proper_a for_o the_o glorious_a creator_n to_o say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n according_a to_o our_o likeness_n or_o to_o say_v i_o will_v make_v man_n in_o my_o image_n according_a to_o my_o likeness_n 8_o be_v not_o the_o word_n we_o in_o creation_n more_o emphatical_a or_o spiritual_a order_n than_o the_o word_n i_o in_o creation_n 9_o what_o be_v thy_o natural_a wisdom_n but_o rational_a exactness_n whether_o word_n bear_v a_o good_a sense_n sound_n or_o language_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o imagine_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n to_o be_v three_o personal_a being_n because_o he_o be_v compel_v to_o speak_v word_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n in_o reference_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o wisdom_n or_o counsel_n concern_v the_o create_v of_o man_n in_o his_o image_n or_o likeness_n 10_o again_o as_o in_o the_o forego_n word_n the_o creation_n of_o man_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n of_o trinitary_a expression_n
let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n according_a to_o our_o likeness_n so_o likewise_o in_o the_o follow_a word_n you_o may_v see_v the_o plural_a number_n convert_v whole_o into_o the_o singular_a number_n of_o one_o divine_a glorious_a be_v in_o those_o say_n thus_o god_n create_v the_o man_n in_o his_o image_n in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n create_v he_o he_o he_o create_v they_o male_a and_o female_a 11_o do_v not_o these_o trinitary_a expression_n themselves_o unto_o all_o man_n that_o have_v any_o spiritual_a light_n in_o they_o clear_o discover_v the_o confuse_a darkness_n of_o any_o kind_n of_o personal_a trinity_n whatsoever_o 12_o can_v three_o person_n in_o equal_a power_n wisdom_n and_o glory_n possible_o be_v but_o one_o god_n 13_o be_v not_o three_o in_o number_n absolute_o three_o how_o then_o or_o by_o what_o diabolical_a logic_n can_v thou_o make_v three_o being_n appear_v to_o be_v but_o one_o divine_a essence_n 14_o three_o distinct_a person_n as_o beforesaid_a can_v possible_o be_v less_o in_o number_n then_o three_o god_n unless_o two_o of_o they_o in_o number_n be_v remove_v that_o there_o may_v remain_v but_o one_o personal_a god_n alone_o that_o none_o may_v share_v with_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n in_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n if_o this_o be_v not_o good_a sense_n let_v man_n or_o angel_n reprove_v i_o with_o better_a 15_o i_o have_v better_a thought_n of_o thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v imagine_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v three_o person_n unite_v together_o in_o one_o divine_a bulk_n or_o be_v and_o to_o think_v that_o he_o by_o his_o infinite_a power_n may_v disunite_v his_o divine_a trinity_n and_o send_v two_o of_o they_o forth_o for_o a_o season_n unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n as_o he_o see_v occasion_n and_o so_o to_o return_v unto_o the_o divine_a essence_n 16_o i_o confess_v these_o and_o many_o such_o like_a gross_a absurdity_n concern_v the_o creator_n every_o man_n be_v subject_a unto_o until_o his_o understanding_n be_v enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a by_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n himself_o 17_o because_o million_o of_o people_n lie_v under_o deep_a darkness_n in_o many_o nation_n concern_v the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n in_o unity_n through_o the_o deceit_n of_o antiquity_n of_o custom_n proceed_v from_o the_o orthodox_n minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o call_v therefore_o i_o be_o compel_v to_o use_v many_o word_n in_o this_o most_o needful_a point_n 18_o if_o through_o a_o sober_a and_o mock_v perusal_n of_o this_o epistle_n thou_o attain_v to_o know_v there_o be_v a_o eternal_a be_v of_o being_n and_o true_o to_o understand_v this_o glorious_a creator_n to_o be_v but_o one_o personal_a majesty_n thou_o will_v then_o as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n itself_o not_o only_o see_v the_o miserable_a confuse_a darkness_n of_o those_o man_n that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n but_o in_o man_n conscience_n only_o or_o that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o but_o perish_a nature_n but_o thou_o will_v also_o see_v all_o man_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o one_o personal_a majesty_n which_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o meet_v deceive_v person_n though_o they_o speak_v like_o oracle_n or_o angel_n 19_o again_o because_o many_o upright_a soul_n for_o want_n of_o clear_a distinction_n in_o they_o of_o the_o invisible_a god_n of_o eternal_a glory_n be_v subject_a to_o continual_a doubt_n of_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o variety_n of_o pretend_a appearance_n in_o his_o most_o holy_a name_n therefore_o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v write_v in_o a_o comparative_a way_n upon_o those_o say_n let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n according_a to_o our_o likeness_n 20_o if_o a_o mighty_a earthly_a prince_n have_v secret_a thought_n of_o act_v a_o thing_n of_o concernment_n in_o relation_n to_o his_o honour_n you_o know_v with_o advice_n of_o his_o privy_a counsellor_n it_o be_v usual_a for_o he_o to_o say_v it_o be_v our_o royal_a pleasure_n to_o do_v such_o a_o thing_n or_o we_o think_v fit_a so_o to_o do_v or_o let_v we_o do_v su●h_o a_o thing_n or_o we_o rejoice_v in_o your_o welfare_n as_o our_o own_o and_o such_o like_a 21_o so_o likewise_o when_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n be_v move_v to_o create_v a_o thing_n of_o concernment_n from_o his_o spiritual_a privy_a council_n it_o be_v most_o requisite_a for_o he_o to_o say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n after_o our_o likeness_n 22_o again_o if_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v some_o ordinary_a thing_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o royal_a pleasure_n in_o reference_n to_o his_o honour_n you_o know_v not_o take_v advice_n of_o his_o privy_a council_n he_o speak_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n altogether_o as_o namely_o i_o will_v such_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v or_o let_v it_o be_v so_o and_o such_o like_a 23_o so_o likewise_o when_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n create_v thing_n for_o his_o honour_n that_o be_v not_o of_o his_o divine_a image_n or_o likeness_n those_o creature_n be_v at_o a_o distance_n and_o of_o low_a concernment_n to_o he_o you_o know_v he_o speak_v altogether_o in_o the_o singular_a number_n only_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o form_v they_o from_o his_o unsearchable_a council_n as_o namely_o let_v such_o a_o thing_n be_v or_o let_v it_o be_v so_o or_o the_o like_a 24_o again_o if_o a_o king_n for_o his_o high_a honour_n from_o his_o most_o eminent_a councillor_n have_v no_o heir_n be_v move_v to_o set_v his_o royal_a stamp_n upon_o a_o man_n as_o to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o blood_n royal_a and_o to_o be_v the_o next_o man_n in_o the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o king_n you_o know_v the_o thing_n be_v of_o so_o near_a concernment_n unto_o he_o he_o think_v he_o can_v never_o speak_v too_o much_o or_o home_n enough_o in_o the_o thing_n for_o the_o take_n upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o subject_n therefore_o he_o will_v say_v let_v we_o make_v such_o a_o man_n our_o heir_n or_o it_o be_v our_o royal_a pleasure_n to_o make_v that_o man_n our_o kinsman_n and_o ruler_n over_o our_o whole_a kingdom_n next_o to_o ourselves_o and_o the_o like_a 25_o so_o likewise_o as_o beforesaid_a the_o create_v of_o man_n be_v of_o the_o high_a and_o near_a concernment_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n that_o his_o wonderful_a wisdom_n and_o love_n in_o the_o thing_n may_v operate_v not_o only_o upon_o spiritual_a man_n but_o also_o in_o the_o mighty_a angel_n themselves_o the_o glorious_a creator_n with_o a_o fullness_n of_o speech_n from_o the_o depth_n of_o his_o invisible_a council_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n or_o in_o our_o likeness_n because_o until_o man_n be_v make_v he_o have_v form_v nothing_o in_o his_o own_o likeness_n but_o the_o contrary_a altogether_o as_o abundant_o beforesaid_a 26_o again_o you_o that_o be_v renew_v from_o on_o high_a with_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n may_v know_v that_o one_o chief_a ground_n that_o move_v the_o divine_a majesty_n to_o say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n it_o be_v because_o he_o do_v eternal_o purpose_n to_o become_v a_o spotless_a man_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n himself_o 27_o so_o that_o the_o word_n we_o have_v relation_n unto_o a_o twofold_a condition_n of_o that_o spiritual_a man_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n himself_o therefore_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o own_o image_n and_o such_o like_a 28_o another_o ground_n why_o the_o divine_a majesty_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n be_v this_o because_o the_o glorious_a creator_n himself_o from_o eternity_n be_v a_o spiritual_a person_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o man_n adam_n 29_o the_o chief_a ground_n of_o all_o why_o the_o divine_a majesty_n say_v l●t_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o own_o image_n be_v this_o because_o the_o infinite_a majesty_n and_o the_o man_n adam_n be_v to_o be_v of_o so_o near_o a_o union_n both_o spiritual_o and_o natural_o 30_o therefore_o the_o god_n of_o eternal_a glory_n be_v compel_v to_o disrobe_v himself_o of_o his_o infiniteness_n by_o transmute_v of_o it_o into_o flesh_n on_o this_o earth_n that_o from_o his_o divine_a self_n he_o may_v purchase_v for_o elect_v mankind_n in_o that_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n personal_a crown_n of_o godlike_a glory_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n with_o himself_o and_o his_o mighty_a angel_n 31_o heaven_n descend_v into_o earth_n that_o earth_n may_v be_v make_v capable_a to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n 32_o god_n himself_o become_v very_a man_n except_o sin_n on_o earth_n that_o very_a man_n himself_o may_v become_v the_o very_a god_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o that_o elect_a mankind_n except_o
be_v change_v from_o its_o present_a condition_n his_o immortal_a soul_n have_v its_o be_v in_o a_o piece_n of_o clay_n be_v become_v subject_a through_o temptation_n to_o be_v transmute_v from_o its_o present_a create_a glory_n also_o 16_o for_o this_o i_o will_v glad_o have_v you_o to_o understand_v though_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n be_v of_o a_o divine_a nature_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v a_o create_a nature_n distinct_a to_o itself_o it_o be_v become_v a_o son_n a_o subject_n a_o servant_n unto_o its_o divine_a god_n and_o capable_a of_o transmutation_n through_o deep_a temptation_n into_o a_o sinful_a condition_n through_o which_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n may_v not_o only_o be_v sub●ect_n to_o natural_a death_n but_o also_o full_a of_o fear_n of_o a_o eternal_a death_n or_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o spiritual_a presence_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n 17_o to_o bring_v forth_o his_o heavenly_a design_n of_o a_o more_o transcendent_a eternal_a glory_n that_o he_o have_v prepare_v through_o suffering_n to_o be_v enjoy_v by_o his_o divine_a image_n at_o the_o last_o day_n with_o himself_o face_n to_o face_n 18_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o quick_a may_v know_v that_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n be_v not_o create_v natural_a only_o because_o he_o be_v appoint_v for_o generation_n but_o also_o because_o if_o his_o body_n have_v be_v immortal_a in_o its_o creation_n as_o well_o as_o his_o soul_n he_o will_v not_o only_o then_o have_v be_v uncapable_a of_o natural_a generation_n but_o also_o he_o will_v have_v be_v uncapable_a of_o any_o kind_n of_o transmutation_n whatsoever_o unless_o he_o give_v consent_n unto_o itself_o 19_o and_o where_o then_o have_v the_o prerogative_n power_n infinite_a wisdom_n and_o transcendent_a glory_n of_o the_o creator_n ever_o be_v see_v or_o know_v by_o man_n or_o angel_n as_o beforesaid_a 20_o again_o though_o adam_n soul_n be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o its_o creation_n yet_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o shall_v stand_v or_o fall_v from_o his_o present_a estate_n or_o no._n 21_o neither_o do_v he_o know_v not_o what_o power_n he_o be_v endue_v withal_o in_o his_o create_a purity_n as_o many_o man_n vain_o imagine_v 22_o if_o he_o have_v know_v that_o he_o have_v power_n in_o his_o own_o will_n to_o preserve_v himself_o in_o his_o present_a condition_n he_o not_o know_v as_o aforesaid_a any_o glory_n above_o what_o he_o have_v enjoy_v you_o may_v be_v sure_a if_o he_o can_v have_v keep_v himself_o in_o that_o bless_a estate_n he_o will_v never_o have_v lose_v it_o for_o want_n of_o make_v use_n of_o all_o the_o power_n that_o be_v in_o he_o to_o have_v resist_v a_o temptation_n unto_o rebellion_n in_o which_o he_o know_v there_o be_v a_o threaten_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o that_o create_a glory_n he_o enjoy_v as_o beforesaid_a 23_o again_o though_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o its_o creation_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v one_o essence_n with_o a_o body_n that_o be_v take_v out_o of_o dust_n therefore_o it_o be_v both_o probable_a and_o capable_a to_o be_v bring_v into_o a_o condition_n of_o enter_v into_o dead_a dust_n for_o a_o moment_n to_o fulfil_v those_o scripture_n saying_n for_o in_o the_o day_n thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n in_o the_o sweat_n of_o thy_o face_n shal●_n thou_o eat_v bread_n till_o thou_o return_v to_o the_o earth_n for_o out_o of_o it_o waste_v thou_o take_v because_o thou_o be_v dust_n and_o to_o dust_n thou_o shall_v return_v 24_o be_v the_o body_n of_o adam_n any_o thing_n but_o dead_a dust_n before_o its_o live_a soul_n be_v infuse_v 25_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o adam_n ever_o speak_v of_o as_o a_o sensible_a live_a being_n before_o it_o become_v one_o essence_n with_o his_o body_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n form_v our_o of_o the_o dust_n as_o a_o house_n or_o tabernacle_n for_o its_o comfortable_a substance_n and_o sensible_a understanding_n of_o its_o own_o live_n be_v 26_o see_v the_o body_n of_o adam_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o lump_n of_o dead_a cold_a senseless_a dust_n before_o his_o soul_n enter_v into_o it_o and_o compose_v it_o in●o_o a_o complete_a live_a man_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o spiritual_a word_n speak_v through_o the_o glorious_a mouth_n of_o the_o creator_n do_v thou_o think_v it_o possible_a that_o either_o of_o they_o can_v enjoy_v any_o sensible_a live_a be_v without_o the_o other_o 27_o you_o know_v the_o scripture_n say_v the_o lord_n god_n also_o make_v the_o man_n of_o he_o dust_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o breathe_v into_o his_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o the_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n though_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n be_v form_v of_o dust_n you_o see_v all_o the_o lise_fw-fr it_o enjoy_v be_v from_o its_o soul_n only_o and_o the_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n 28_o when_o the_o lord_n say_v for_o in_o the_o day_n thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n be_v it_o not_o the_o very_a soul_n of_o adam_n as_o well_o as_o his_o body_n that_o be_v threaten_v with_o death_n itself_o 29_o nay_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n can_v live_v in_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n but_o the_o soul_n what_o then_o can_v be_v capable_a of_o die_v but_o the_o soul_n only_o 30_o again_o can_v thou_o be_v so_o senseless_a as_o to_o think_v that_o ever_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n can_v have_v turn_v to_o dust_n if_o his_o soul_n have_v not_o die_v within_o his_o body_n and_o like_o a_o spark_n of_o sire_n in_o a_o oven_n that_o be_v close_v from_o all_o kind_n of_o air_n 31_o so_o likewise_o thou_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o immortal_a soul_n of_o adam_n become_v mortal_a as_o soon_o as_o ever_o it_o be_v pollute_v with_o sin_n and_o when_o it_o come_v to_o taste_v of_o death_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n through_o the_o sloppage_n of_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n proceed_v from_o the_o invisible_a soul_n that_o fiery_a spark_n be_v quench_v with_o silen●sleep_a of_o death_n as_o life_n or_o light_n that_o be_v smother_v and_o do_v not_o fly_v in_o the_o air_n as_o man_n vain_o imagine_v 32_o again_o it_o be_v say_v the_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n now_o you_o know_v that_o every_o man_n sinful_a soul_n be_v the_o life_n of_o its_o natural_a body_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v a_o dark_a dead_a soul_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n while_o it_o be_v alive_a in_o natural_a but_o as_o beforesaid_a the_o spirit_n of_o adam_n be_v call_v a_o live_a soul_n in_o relation_n unto_o the_o live_a virtue_n beauty_n or_o invisible_a glory_n of_o its_o creation_n 33_o i_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n of_o ever_o be_v capable_a of_o death_n if_o it_o have_v be_v always_o preserve_v from_o be_v pollute_v with_o sin_n 34_o moreover_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o it_o be_v but_o touch_v with_o sin_n in_o that_o very_a sin_n be_v death_n itself_o 35_o who_o ever_o thou_o be_v that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o pure_a soul_n of_o adam_n be_v not_o defile_v with_o sin_n itself_o what_o ever_o light_n thou_o pretend_v to_o know_v thou_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a as_o yet_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n 36_o if_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a truth_n of_o scripture_n thou_o be_v make_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o pure_a soul_n of_o adam_n be_v overcome_v of_o sin_n and_o therewith_o all_o defile_v through_o his_o whole_a man_n though_o man_n or_o angel_n shall_v gainsay_v it_o thou_o may_v be_v full_o assure_v that_o both_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o adam_n be_v in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n dead_a asleep_a void_a of_o all_o life_n light_n motion_n heat_n or_o any_o thing_n appear_v unto_o life_n until_o that_o second_o man_n adam_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o his_o word_n do_v or_o shall_v raise_v he_o again_o and_o all_o mankind_n that_o be_v asleep_a with_o he_o in_o the_o dust_n at_o the_o last_o day_n 37_o again_o though_o the_o body_n of_o the_o man_n adam_n be_v form_v of_o dust_n be_v absolute_o natural_a through_o its_o appointment_n for_o generation_n yet_o i_o will_v have_v you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a to_o understand_v this_o secret_a that_o until_o eve_n lufted_a after_o adam_n through_o her_o be_v first_o defile_v with_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n the_o soul_n of_o adam_n be_v divine_a and_o free_a from_o all_o kind_n of_o rationality_n can_v not_o possible_o have_v any_o desire_n in_o it_o after_o carnal_a copulation_n with_o his_o wife_n 38_o you_o may_v know_v that_o carnal_a pleasure_n be_v too_o low_a for_o a_o spiritual_a soul_n who_o nature_n be_v variety_n of_o divine_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o
one_o of_o israel_n may_v see_v in_o some_o measure_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o two_o scripture_n seed_n the_o angelical_a devil_n first_o become_v a_o man-child_n &_o the_o angelical_a god_n afterward_o become_v a_o man-child_n 33_o thus_o the_o most_o holy_a god_n abase_v himself_o in_o the_o very_a womb_n of_o a_o woman_n that_o he_o may_v first_o or_o last_o destroy_v the_o power_n of_o that_o serpentine_a reason_n or_o lie_v imagination_n in_o all_o his_o elect_a israelite_n chap._n xxxiii_o 1_o what_o form_n the_o devil_n be_v of_o before_o he_o tempt_v eve_n 2_o spiritual_a body_n do_v not_o change_v their_o form_n but_o their_o glory_n 3_o spirit_n can_v take_v up_o no_o body_n but_o their_o own_o 4_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n be_v not_o a_o apple_n or_o any_o other_o fruit_n that_o can_v be_v eat_v with_o the_o tooth_n it_o be_v write_v but_o god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n as_o it_o please_v he_o even_o to_o every_o seed_n his_o own_o body_n 2_o my_o spiritual_a friend_n according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o letter_n you_o may_v see_v that_o by_o the_o free_a word_n of_o the_o creator_n every_o seed_n or_o spirit_n natural_o bring_v forth_o its_o own_o body_n or_o likeness_n in_o its_o season_n 3_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o serpent_n angel_n when_o he_o tempt_v eve_n he_o be_v not_o a_o homely_a beast_n as_o man_n vain_o imagine_v from_o their_o beastly_a reason_n 4_o but_o he_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o appear_v unto_o eve_n in_o form_n like_o unto_o a_o glorious_a god_n or_o man_n 5_o for_o this_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o understand_v who_o soul_n be_v fix_v upon_o a_o substantial_a glory_n to_o come_v though_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o god_n or_o angel_n be_v transmute_v into_o natural_a body_n or_o though_o the_o mortal_a body_n of_o man_n be_v change_v into_o immortality_n yet_o the_o form_n of_o their_o person_n be_v never_o alter_v but_o the_o beauty_n of_o glory_n of_o they_o only_o 6_o but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o be_v any_o thing_n hard_a for_o the_o lord_n or_o can_v he_o bot_n appear_v in_o any_o form_n or_o transmute_v his_o creature_n into_o any_o shape_n whatsoever_o after_o he_o have_v form_v he_o 7_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v from_o the_o truth_n itself_o the_o creator_n can_v do_v whatsoever_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n see_v sit_v 8_o now_o in_o his_o wisdom_n he_o foresee_v that_o his_o infinite_a power_n and_o wonderful_a glory_n will_v most_o apparent_o be_v see_v by_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n in_o a_o comely_a order_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v 9_o so_o that_o all_o creature_n from_o eternity_n appear_v most_o amiable_a in_o his_o eye_n that_o in_o time_n be_v to_o bring_v forth_o their_o own_o body_n according_a to_o their_o kind_n 10_o wherefore_o when_o any_o monster_n be_v bear_v you_o may_v know_v it_o be_v either_o through_o unnatural_a mix_n of_o seed_n together_o or_o it_o be_v some_o judgement_n answerable_a to_o some_o wicked_a act_n or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o forerunner_n of_o some_o strange_a or_o dreadful_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o fall_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o monstrous_a mind_a man_n or_o woman_n which_o abhor_v the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o personal_a majesty_n 11_o for_o our_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o spiritual_a and_o natural_a order_n and_o not_o of_o magical_a confusion_n 12_o this_o truth_n will_v be_v a_o eternal_a witness_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o canaanitish_a lie_v devil_n which_o say_v when_o the_o body_n of_o man_n turn_v to_o its_o dust_n the_o soul_n be_v swallow_v up_o into_o the_o eternal_a ocean_n or_o else_o it_o appear_v in_o some_o other_o form_n as_o namely_o a_o horse_n or_o a_o ass_n or_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o root_n or_o a_o flower_n or_o such_o like_a 13_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n from_o whence_o think_v you_o proceed_v this_o and_o all_o such_o like_a error_n true_o only_o from_o some_o secret_a lust_n man_n be_v in_o bondage_n unto_o which_o be_v as_o dear_a to_o they_o as_o their_o very_a life_n 14_o therefore_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o appear_v again_o in_o the_o body_n of_o man_n lest_o they_o shall_v reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o all_o their_o former_a filthiness_n bless_v be_v the_o purify_a spirit_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v their_o god_n eternal_o face_n to_o face_n 15_o again_o it_o be_v write_v that_o she_o give_v also_o to_o her_o husband_n with_o she_o and_o he_o do_v eat_v that_o be_v be_v full_a of_o natural_a lust_n from_o that_o serpent_n within_o she_o she_o by_o her_o angelical_a speech_n do_v entice_v her_o husband_n to_o lie_v with_o she_o and_o so_o he_o be_v defile_v also_o with_o she_o 16_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o the_o woman_n be_v make_v for_o that_o very_a end_n for_o procreation_n of_o mankind_n therefore_o it_o seem_v something_o strange_a that_o natural_a lust_n shall_v be_v that_o sin_n of_o eat_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n or_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n 17_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v truth_n the_o woman_n be_v form_v for_o that_o very_a end_n and_o in_o her_o seed_n be_v the_o very_a law_n of_o generation_n 18_o but_o she_o be_v defile_v in_o spirit_n and_o body_n by_o another_o to_o her_o own_o knowledge_n before_o she_o be_v capable_a to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o desire_v she_o own_o husband_n 19_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o aforesaid_a she_o immediate_o desire_v he_o to_o hide_v her_o know_a rebellion_n against_o her_o creator_n 20_o beside_o all_o this_o know_v her self_o first_o in_o the_o transgression_n her_o conscience_n tell_v she_o that_o she_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v ensnare_v her_o innocent_a husband_n to_o hide_v her_o folly_n 21_o but_o to_o have_v wait_v for_o the_o issue_n of_o she_o own_o do_n i_o mean_v the_o birth_n of_o that_o serpentine_a curse_a cain_n in_o her_o womb_n before_o she_o have_v desire_v the_o lawful_a knowledge_n of_o her_o own_o husband_n 22_o again_o if_o you_o that_o be_v sober_a do_v but_o serious_o ponder_v it_o in_o your_o spirit_n you_o can_v be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o law_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o death_n depend_v upon_o the_o eat_n of_o a_o apple_n from_o a_o natural_a tree_n 23_o for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n cause_v the_o earth_n to_o bring_v forth_o all_o variety_n of_o fruit_n to_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o mouth_n principal_o as_o a_o superfluity_n of_o delight_n of_o the_o taste_n of_o man_n only_o 24_o therefore_o how_o can_v sober_a man_n imagine_v or_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o all_o mankind_n shall_v be_v so_o venomed_a through_o the_o eat_n of_o a_o apple_n 25_o as_o sure_a as_o the_o lord_n live_v it_o be_v such_o a_o devilish_a apple_n that_o be_v eat_v by_o eve_n that_o it_o have_v and_o will_v bring_v forth_o many_o million_o of_o serpent_n dragon_n devil_n in_o form_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n unto_o eternal_a condemnation_n 26_o again_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n perceive_v you_o not_o yet_o that_o whatsoever_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o draught_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n come_v from_o the_o heart_n for_o out_o of_o the_o heart_n come_v evil_a thought_n murder_n adultery_n fornication_n theft_n false_a testimony_n slander_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o defile_v the_o man_n mat._n the_o 15._o 27_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n i_o hope_v ere_o this_o you_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o natural_a apple_n eat_v by_o eve_n mouth_n and_o so_o pass_v through_o her_o belly_n into_o the_o draught_n that_o defile_v her_o whole_a man_n 28_o for_o if_o our_o god_n and_o only_a saviour_n be_v all_o truth_n as_o he_o be_v and_o can_v possible_o lie_v then_o that_o which_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o man_n go_v into_o his_o belly_n and_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o draught_n without_o defile_v his_o soul_n so_o that_o without_o controversy_n that_o fruit_n or_o apple_n take_v and_o eat_v or_o receive_v by_o eve_n and_o adam_n through_o which_o they_o be_v whole_o defile_v shame_a and_o fearful_o torment_v never_o come_v into_o their_o mouth_n or_o tooth_n as_o literal_a wise_a man_n vain_o imagine_v 29_o but_o as_o beforesaid_a it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o the_o serpent_n angel_n in_o the_o innocent_a mouth_n of_o eve_n soul_n by_o her_o unlawful_a lust_a after_o her_o innocent_a husband_n that_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o may_v cover_v her_o iniquity_n or_o when_o she_o be_v call_v to_o a_o account_n help_v to_o bear_v her_o burden_n 30_o again_o it_o be_v write_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n
unclean_a reason_n or_o lie_v imagination_n within_o he_o be_v it_o possible_a think_v you_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o torment_v as_o some_o man_n be_v with_o a_o inward_a burn_a through_o a_o secret_a fear_n of_o eternal_a suffering_n rise_v in_o they_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o former_a evil_n commit_v against_o the_o light_n of_o conscience_n 21_o furthermore_n see_v all_o man_n which_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n must_v die_v or_o perish_v and_o that_o man_n own_o lust_n be_v that_o imaginary_a devil_n from_o whence_o proceed_v all_o sin_n or_o evil_n without_o controversy_n though_o man_n or_o angel_n shall_v gainsay_v it_o there_o be_v now_o no_o other_o evil_a spirit_n angel_n or_o devil_n but_o unmerciful_a man_n and_o woman_n only_o 22_o again_o if_o envy_n pride_n covetousness_n hypocrisy_n lust_n and_o such_o like_a be_v the_o devil_n in_o man_n be_v not_o man_n and_o woman_n those_o devil_n that_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o those_o evil_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v from_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o other_o evil_a angel_n or_o devil_n beside_o mankind_n that_o lust_n after_o woman_n or_o silver_n or_o honour_n or_o revenge_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o evil_n whatsoever_o 23_o truly_n if_o those_o suppose_a wise_a man_n which_o talk_v so_o much_o 〈◊〉_d subtlety_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o air_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n can_v possible_o know_v that_o their_o own_o imaginary_a reason_n be_v that_o evil_a spirit_n or_o prince_n of_o all_o their_o airy_a dispute_n concern_v god_n angel_n devil_n heaven_n hell_n eternal_a glory_n or_o shame_n to_o come_v which_o they_o know_v not_o of_o according_a to_o truth_n 24_o then_o in_o stead_n of_o their_o rejoice_v in_o the_o approbation_n of_o many_o man_n in_o relation_n unto_o their_o natural_a gift_n their_o own_o spirit_n will_v immediate_o become_v the_o principle_n of_o all_o those_o howl_a groan_a serpent_n devil_n speak_v of_o in_o holy_a writ_n even_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n in_o this_o mortal_a life_n 25_o again_o be_v it_o not_o against_o all_o spiritual_a or_o rational_a sense_n that_o any_o man_n angel_n or_o devil_n shall_v suffer_v eternal_a damnation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o another_o or_o for_o another_o tempt_n he_o to_o sin_n or_o evil_n 26_o moreover_o do_v it_o not_o stand_v to_o very_o good_a sense_n that_o that_o creature_n that_o be_v leave_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v tempt_v unto_o sin_n or_o evil_n and_o overcome_v thereby_o and_o remain_v under_o the_o power_n of_o it_o to_o his_o life_n end_v shall_v eternal_o suffer_v at_o the_o great_a day_n for_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o another_o iniquity_n 27_o wherefore_o be_v it_o not_o now_o one_o of_o the_o vain_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n for_o any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v any_o other_o evil_a spirit_n angel_n or_o devil_n that_o tempt_v he_o to_o any_o motion_n imagination_n thought_n desire_n word_n or_o action_n of_o rebellion_n against_o god_n or_o man_n but_o that_o lie_v proud_a envious_a devil_n live_v in_o his_o whole_a man_n as_o beforesaid_a 28_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n that_o profess_v spiritual_a light_n or_o life_n in_o he_o for_o very_a shame_n say_v that_o god_n can_v be_v tempt_v or_o tempt_v any_o man_n unto_o sin_n or_o evil_a neither_o let_v he_o say_v that_o any_o evil_a spirit_n angel_n or_o devil_n in_o the_o air_n or_o earth_n or_o in_o the_o water_n or_o in_o the_o fire_n tempt_v he_o to_o commit_v any_o sin_n or_o evil_n but_o that_o air_n watery_a fiery_a fleshly_a devil_n dwell_v only_o in_o his_o own_o body_n 29_o i_o say_v let_v he_o know_v that_o that_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o air_n which_o through_o the_o abscenting_a virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n beget_v those_o legion_n of_o devil_n or_o lust_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n 30_o and_o it_o be_v the_o true_a light_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o all_o his_o new_a bear_v one_o that_o crush_v those_o cockatrice_n egg_n before_o they_o become_v serpent_n devil_n to_o sting_v the_o whole_a man_n with_o fear_n of_o eternal_a death_n 31_o those_o devil_n which_o by_o the_o powerful_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o mary_n magdelen_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n speak_v of_o in_o holy_a writ_n be_v only_o all_o manner_n of_o filthy_a disease_n or_o fiery_a distemper_n in_o man_n that_o hurry_v he_o about_o any_o desperate_a wickedness_n whatsoever_o oftentimes_o increase_v so_o powerful_o that_o it_o do_v not_o only_a occasion_n he_o to_o rend_v his_o own_o body_n and_o break_v iron_n chain_n 32_o but_o also_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o tear_v any_o one_o in_o piece_n until_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n shine_v into_o his_o distemper_a soul_n with_o that_o golden_a grace_n of_o true_a faith_n through_o which_o that_o imaginary_a devil_n be_v chain_v up_o whereby_o all_o his_o fleshly_a good_n be_v spoil_v of_o ever_o have_v power_n in_o he_o as_o former_o and_o be_v now_o in_o his_o right_a mind_n at_o the_o glorious_a foot_n of_o the_o true_a jesus_n through_o his_o own_o pure_a light_n lead_v he_o into_o heavenly_a rapture_n in_o reference_n unto_o his_o eternal_a glory_n at_o his_o visible_a appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n with_o all_o his_o mighty_a angel_n chap._n xxxvii_o 1_o the_o prerogative_n power_n of_o god_n be_v above_o all_o law_n 2_o why_o god_n curse_v the_o fall_v angel_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o eve_n 3_o the_o angel_n nature_n after_o his_o offence_n be_v not_o satisfy_v without_o be_v ruler_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o that_o serpent_n by_o who_o eve_n be_v beguile_v be_v none_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o this_o creation_n nor_o a_o evil_a spirit_n in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o natural_a serpent_n as_o have_v be_v long_o imagine_v by_o the_o learned_a minister_n of_o man_n but_o be_v a_o absolute_a serpent_n devil_n as_o be_v abundant_o declare_v by_o you_o and_o that_o it_o enter_v into_o eve_n and_o in_o her_o womb_n be_v pronounce_v curse_v by_o the_o creator_n and_o so_o natural_o bring_v forth_o himself_o a_o curse_a cain_n of_o her_o seed_n what_o be_v this_o unto_o eve_n or_o why_o shall_v she_o suffer_v any_o kind_n of_o punishment_n for_o be_v overcome_v by_o a_o enemy_n that_o be_v too_o mighty_a for_o she_o 2_o from_o the_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v concern_v the_o enemy_n be_v too_o potent_a for_o she_o that_o be_v hide_v from_o her_o eye_n by_o the_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n of_o the_o creator_n 3_o for_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n be_v not_o only_o pure_o create_v in_o its_o kind_n like_a unto_o angel_n or_o other_o creature_n but_o it_o be_v also_o of_o the_o very_a same_o nature_n of_o his_o most_o glorious_a spirit_n that_o form_v it_o so_o that_o she_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a in_o the_o least_o that_o all_o obedience_n be_v most_o due_a unto_o her_o creator_n command_n 4_o moreover_o you_o may_v know_v also_o that_o the_o creator_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o royal_a will_n for_o manifest_v of_o his_o glorious_a power_n may_v give_v his_o creature_n a_o spiritual_a law_n of_o light_n and_o life_n in_o itself_o and_o yet_o reserve_v to_o himself_o the_o prerogative_n power_n of_o it_o 5_o furthermore_o you_o know_v the_o glorious_a creator_n may_v present_v unto_o the_o view_n of_o his_o image_n a_o serpent_n devil_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o his_o workmanship_n and_o may_v upon_o pain_n of_o death_n forbid_v his_o creature_n of_o have_v to_o do_v with_o that_o tree_n or_o of_o harken_v unto_o it_o in_o the_o least_o 6_o also_o you_o know_v the_o creator_n may_v leave_v his_o divine_a image_n unto_o its_o own_o present_a strength_n through_o which_o it_o may_v by_o a_o subtle_a enemy_n be_v tempt_v and_o overcome_v to_o commit_v evil_a with_o it_o against_o its_o creator_n law_n and_o yet_o its_o sin_n be_v upon_o his_o own_o head_n 7_o why_o not_o only_o because_o it_o rebel_v against_o its_o own_o divine_a light_n but_o principal_o because_o there_o be_v no_o law_n to_o bind_v a_o infinite_a majesty_n to_o protect_v it_o in_o its_o create_a purity_n 8_o my_o belove_a moderate_a brethren_n if_o man_n can_v forbear_v reason_v against_o the_o creator_n prerogative_n power_n wonderful_a wisdom_n or_o way_n which_o be_v past_o find_v out_o then_o will_v they_o enjoy_v true_a and_o last_a peace_n in_o their_o own_o soul_n through_o deliverance_n from_o that_o conscience_n condemn_v evil_a of_o rash_a judge_a thing_n they_o know_v not_o but_o this_o grace_n of_o patience_n be_v prepare_v only_o for_o the_o bless_a israelite_n and_o not_o for_o scoff_a
and_o deny_v god_n the_o only_a lord_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o unto_o they_o for_o they_o have_v follow_v the_o way_n of_o cain_n and_o be_v cast_v away_o by_o the_o deceit_n of_o balaams_n wage_n and_o perish_v in_o the_o gainsay_n of_o core_n 31_o thus_o be_v it_o not_o clear_a unto_o all_o man_n that_o have_v any_o faith_n in_o they_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a whole_a world_n to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o divine_a glory_n of_o election_n and_o everlasting_a shame_n of_o rejection_n 32_o a_o curse_n cain_n and_o a_o bless_a abel_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o end_n thereof_o a_o subtle_a serpent_n and_o a_o simple_a saint_n a_o scoff_a carnal_a ishmael_n and_o a_o spiritual_a isaac_n a_o bloody_a mind_a esau_n and_o a_o merciful_a mind_a jacob_n a_o persecute_v saul_n and_o a_o prophetical_a david_n a_o treacherous_a judas_n and_o a_o gracious_a and_o glorious_a jesus_n a_o bless_a seath_n bear_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o righteous_a abel_n who_o curse_a cain_n slay_v to_o bring_v forth_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o just_a that_o the_o lord_n of_o eternal_a glory_n may_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n as_o well_o as_o the_o spirit_n spring_n from_o a_o spiritual_a line_n of_o his_o own_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a 33_o and_o not_o from_o a_o rational_a or_o carnal_a line_n of_o eternal_a dea●●_n in_o chain_n of_o utter_a darkness_n which_o if_o it_o have_v power_n according_a to_o i●●cursed_a desire_n it_o will_v destroy_v god_n elect_a man_n and_o angel_n heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o in_o they_o and_o itself_o also_o rather_o than_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o or_o may_v not_o only_a itself_o bear_v rule_v over_o all_o 34_o see_v the_o god_n of_o eternal_a glory_n himself_o spring_v from_o the_o loin_n of_o adam_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v it_o not_o the_o great_a darkness_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v for_o any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o cain_n and_o judas_n be_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o adam_n as_o well_o as_o abel_n and_o jesus_n 35_o do_v not_o those_o man_n that_o teach_v this_o error_n out_o of_o ignorance_n justify_v cain_n and_o judas_n and_o condemn_v abel_n and_o jesus_n 36_o from_o this_o gross_a mistake_n do_v they_o not_o strengthen_v man_n in_o all_o their_o rebellion_n against_o god_n and_o man_n what_o seem_v glorious_a language_n soever_o proceed_v through_o their_o mouth_n 37_o again_o if_o cain_n and_o judas_n abel_n and_o jesus_n spring_v both_o from_o the_o loin_n of_o the_o first_o man_n adam_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n or_o any_o other_o account_n whatsoever_o be_v it_o not_o one_o of_o the_o vain_a lip_n labour_v under_o heaven_n for_o man_n to_o speak_v or_o write_v concern_v the_o visible_a thing_n of_o eternity_n unless_o it_o be_v for_o a_o heap_n of_o silver_n or_o deceitful_a honour_n among_o man_n that_o perish_v 38_o all_o solid_a sober_a man_n do_v certain_o know_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v suffer_v eternal_a misery_n if_o all_o mankind_n by_o generation_n spring_v from_o one_o root_n only_o 39_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n think_v you_o that_o the_o wise_a naturallist_n in_o dispute_n be_v able_a to_o silence_v the_o most_o learned_a speaker_n under_o heaven_n in_o their_o own_o suppose_a spiritual_a matter_n be_v it_o not_o because_o those_o minister_n be_v uncapable_a to_o give_v a_o true_a distinction_n between_o the_o original_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o death_n or_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n 40_o if_o man_n that_o speak_v their_o experience_n to_o one_o another_o as_o receive_v from_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o point_n be_v not_o that_o the_o occasion_n of_o all_o notional_a brain_n fancy_n or_o airy_a opinion_n even_o among_o the_o most_o pure_a appearance_n in_o this_o present_a age_n 41_o be_v it_o not_o from_o hence_o that_o man_n of_o a_o rational_a pierce_a wit_n be_v able_a to_o counterfeit_v outlandish_a chronicle_n in_o a_o methodical_a manner_n concern_v the_o strange_a act_n of_o king_n and_o emperor_n many_o thousand_o year_n before_o the_o first_o man_n adam_n have_v any_o sensible_a be_v or_o invent_v history_n so_o accurate_o concern_v knight_n lady_n giant_n and_o 〈◊〉_d like_a that_o no_o man_n by_o his_o natural_a reason_n can_v know_v whether_o they_o a●●_n feign_v or_o un●●igned_v 42_o can_v any_o sober_a man_n imagine_v or_o think_v those_o man_n that_o want_v the_o foresay_a spiritual_a gift_n be_v ever_o move_v or_o call_v by_o that_o glorious_a spirit_n to_o be_v a_o public_a or_o private_a speaker_n or_o interpreter_n of_o holy_a writ_n or_o a_o messenger_n or_o ambassador_n to_o his_o brethren_n of_o invisible_a spiritual_a excellency_n appoint_v visible_o to_o be_v see_v to_o eternity_n 43_o if_o cain_n and_o abel_n be_v both_o beget_v by_o adam_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o eve_n as_o almost_o all_o man_n vain_o imagine_v from_o one_o bare_a scripture_n record_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o that_o man_n that_o be_v offend_v with_o i_o concern_v this_o point_n why_o cain_n be_v nominate_v in_o holy_a writ_n to_o be_v of_o that_o wicked_a one_o aforesaid_a and_o brand_v as_o a_o outcast_n fugitive_a or_o vagabond_n and_o curse_a from_o the_o divine_a presence_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o natural_a presence_n of_o his_o parent_n for_o ever_o and_o condemn_v with_o balaam_n and_o core_n as_o a_o perish_a castaway_n 44_o this_o i_o be_o sure_a of_o that_o no_o spiritual_a or_o rational_a man_n that_o be_v sober_a dare_v say_v that_o either_o adam_n or_o eve_n be_v that_o wicked_a one_o from_o whence_o the_o curse_a spirit_n of_o cain_n spring_v 45_o why_o because_o there_o be_v no_o such_o approbrious_a name_n attribute_v unto_o they_o throughout_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n 46_o moreover_o you_o may_v know_v that_o that_o wicked_a one_o from_o whence_o cain_n spirit_n proceed_v can_v not_o possible_o have_v any_o relation_n unto_o adam_n or_o eve_n though_o cain_n be_v conceive_v in_o her_o womb_n and_o bear_v of_o her_o body_n 47_o why_o because_o there_o be_v a_o absolute_a curse_n denounce_v upon_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n and_o his_o seed_n in_o her_o womb_n as_o aforesaid_a without_o any_o after_o promise_v in_o holy_a writ_n for_o ever_o be_v redeem_v by_o the_o creato●_n 48_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a you_o know_v there_o be_v a_o gracious_a promise_n by_o the_o creator_n himself_o of_o the_o redemption_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n after_o their_o fall_a estate_n with_o their_o whole_a generation_n of_o righteous_a abel_n seth_n or_o abraham_n in_o that_o glorious_a hide_a say_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n and_o that_o in_o the_o five_o of_o the_o roman_n where_o it_o be_v thus_o write_v likewise_o then_o as_o by_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o the_o fault_n come_v on_o all_o man_n to_o condemnation_n so_o by_o the_o justify_n of_o one_o the_o benefit_n abound_v towards_o all_o man_n to_o the_o justification_n of_o life_n 49_o if_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o sober_a compare_v this_o scripture_n of_o seem_v general_a redemption_n unto_o other_o scripture_n concern_v cain_n and_o his_o generation_n as_o abundant_o aforesaid_a you_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v only_o of_o a_o restoration_n of_o the_o elect_a israelite_n or_o adamite_n and_o not_o of_o the_o line_n or_o generation_n of_o cananitish_a reprobate_n 50_o if_o you_o look_v in_o the_o generalogy_n of_o adam_n unto_o jesus_n the_o second_o adam_n you_o shall_v find_v no_o cain_n there_o make_v mention_n of_o in_o the_o least_o chap._n thirty-nine_o 1_o no_o condemnation_n but_o to_o person_n of_o maturity_n 2_o no_o child_n damn_v though_o they_o be_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n 3_o he_o that_o kill_v a_o prophet_n or_o a_o righteous_a man_n will_v kill_v the_o creator_n if_o he_o can_v 4_o no_o salvation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o man_n own_o will_n 5_o but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n if_o two_o distinct_a generation_n have_v proceed_v through_o the_o body_n of_o one_o woman_n the_o one_o elect_v unto_o eternal_a personal_a glory_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o the_o other_o reject_v unto_o everlasting_a shame_n in_o this_o perish_a world_n at_o the_o end_n thereof_o which_o we_o can_v no_o way_n disprove_v 2_o wherefore_o our_o desire_n be_v to_o know_v whether_o all_o the_o posterity_n of_o cain_n be_v reject_v see_v the_o whole_a generation_n of_o adam_n be_v elect_v be_v as_o at_o length_n declare_v by_o you_o from_o that_o divine_a gift_n i_o receive_v by_o voice_n of_o word_n from_o the_o everliving_a jesus_n 3_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o eternal_a election_n or_o
spirit_n 31_o then_o indeed_o and_o not_o till_o then_o man_n soul_n that_o be_v averse_a to_o all_o spiritual_a good_a by_o that_o divine_a light_n be_v make_v willing_a to_o choose_v the_o better_a part_n 32_o because_o then_o he_o certain_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n for_o some_o and_o a_o everlasting_a death_n and_o shame_n for_o other_o 33_o therefore_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a can_v but_o know_v that_o though_o man_n speak_v a_o language_n like_a unto_o angel_n or_o the_o divine_a majesty_n himself_o as_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n seem_v to_o do_v in_o the_o beguile_n of_o eve_n yet_o it_o be_v utter_o impossible_o they_o shall_v possess_v any_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o the_o everliving_a jehovah_n or_o jesus_n until_o their_o soul_n be_v firm_o establish_v with_o a_o undoubtable_a assurance_n of_o their_o own_o personal_a glory_n in_o a_o world_n to_o come_v 34_o so_o much_o at_o present_a concern_v the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n or_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n o_o bless_a and_o happy_a be_v those_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o themselves_o already_o that_o enjoy_v this_o distinguish_a light_n of_o life_n eternal_a in_o the_o purity_n thereof_o chap._n xl._n 1_o concern_v christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n 2_o the_o vanity_n of_o that_o opinion_n that_o believe_v christ_n personal_a reign_n upon_o this_o earth_n because_o of_o many_o opinion_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o ignorance_n of_o most_o man_n concern_v his_o come_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a therefore_o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v treat_v of_o this_o most_o needful_a point_n from_o certain_a say_n of_o himself_o in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o matth._n the_o word_n be_v these_o for_o as_o the_o lightning_n that_o lighten_v out_o of_o the_o one_o part_n under_o heaven_n shine_v unto_o the_o other_o part_n under_o heaven_n so_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v in_o his_o day_n and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n they_o eat_v they_o drink_v they_o marry_v wife_n and_o give_v in_o marriage_n unto_o the_o day_n that_o noah_n go_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o destroy_v they_o all_o likewise_o also_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o lot_n they_o eat_v they_o drink_v they_o buy_v they_o sell_v they_o plant_v they_o build_v but_o in_o the_o day_n that_o lot_n go_v out_o of_o sodom_n it_o reign_v fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n and_o destroy_v they_o all_o after_o these_o ensample_n shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v reveal_v 2_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v there_o be_v a_o twofold_a appear_v of_o christ_n unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n the_o one_o spiritual_a and_o see_v only_o by_o the_o invisible_a eye_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o other_o be_v personal_a and_o see_v only_o by_o the_o visible_a eye_n of_o the_o body_n 3_o also_o you_o know_v christ_n be_v the_o divine_a rock_n of_o all_o age_n he_o have_v spiritual_o manifest_v himself_o unto_o his_o bless_a abel_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n till_o now_o but_o as_o for_o his_o visible_a appear_v in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n whereby_o man_n may_v be_v able_a to_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o their_o god_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man_n and_o live_v you_o know_v that_o he_o do_v but_o once_o so_o appear_v only_o for_o a_o few_o year_n 4_o again_o in_o the_o 25._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n it_o be_v write_v thus_o and_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o glory_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n with_o he_o then_o shall_v he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o before_o he_o shall_v be_v gather_v all_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v separate_v they_o one_o from_o another_o as_o a_o shepherd_n separate_v the_o sheep_n from_o the_o goat_n 5_o it_o be_v also_o write_v in_o the_o thessalonian_o thus_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v show_v himself_o from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n unto_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 6_o if_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o sober_a do_v but_o compare_v these_o three_o place_n of_o scripture_n together_o than_o you_o may_v clear_o see_v what_o christ_n mean_v by_o that_o day_n of_o his_o personal_a appear_v 7_o after_o his_o suffering_n and_o glorification_n he_o shall_v appear_v like_o lightning_n from_o one_o part_n under_o heaven_n to_o the_o other_o he_o shall_v appear_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o all_o his_o holy_a angel_n 8_o behold_v you_o bless_v of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n what_o kind_n of_o appear_v of_o christ_n in_o his_o glory_n like_o lightning_n or_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n be_v this_o be_v it_o not_o the_o visible_a appear_v of_o his_o fiery_a glorious_a person_n with_o the_o glitter_a person_n of_o his_o mighty_a angel_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n or_o in_o the_o air_n 9_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o how_o shall_v all_o nation_n be_v gather_v together_o before_o he_o that_o he_o may_v make_v a_o eternal_a separation_n between_o they_o according_a as_o he_o have_v speak_v 10_o it_o have_v be_v long_o imagine_v by_o man_n of_o rare_a part_n in_o the_o account_n of_o many_o people_n that_o before_o the_o general_a judgement_n day_n christ_n will_v come_v again_o personal_o to_o reign_v a_o thousand_o year_n on_o this_o earth_n with_o his_o saint_n 11_o and_o their_o opinion_n be_v ground_v partly_o upon_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n which_o be_v long_o since_o fulfil_v as_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v in_o due_a season_n 12_o but_o first_o i_o shall_v prove_v by_o scripture_n record_n the_o fail_v off_o this_o opinion_n in_o the_o 3._o chap._n of_o the_o act_v it_o be_v thus_o write_v when_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_v shall_v come_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o shall_v send_v jesus_n christ_n which_o before_o be_v preach_v unto_o you_o who_o the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v until_o the_o time_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v fulfil_v which_o the_o prophet_n have_v foretell_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n what_o think_v you_o then_o of_o christ_n personal_a reign_n on_o this_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n with_o his_o saint_n be_v it_o not_o point_v blank_a against_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o plain_a testimony_n of_o holy_a writ_n 13_o in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n by_o saint_n john_n you_o may_v find_v it_o thus_o write_v let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o in_o my_o father_n house_n be_v many_o dwelling-place_n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o i_o will_v have_v tell_v you_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o if_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o unto_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o may_v you_o be_v also_o 14_o in_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n you_o see_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o least_o to_o his_o apostle_n of_o his_o come_n again_o personal_o to_o reign_v upon_o this_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n 15_o but_o of_o the_o contrary_a he_o tell_v his_o heavy-hearted_n disciple_n that_o he_o be_v go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o they_o or_o he_o be_v go_v into_o the_o high_a heaven_n or_o prepare_v place_n of_o eternal_a glory_n appoint_v for_o they_o with_o himself_o after_o they_o have_v suffer_v with_o he_o on_o earth_n and_o he_o will_v come_v again_o in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o holy_a angel_n and_o receive_v they_o into_o his_o father_n house_n or_o heavenly_a kingdom_n where_o he_o now_o be_v that_o they_o may_v with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n moses_n and_o elias_n everlasting_o behold_v his_o bright_a burn_a glory_n even_a face_n to_o face_n 16_o what_o be_v this_o personal_a reign_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o saint_n a_o thousand_o year_n that_o suppose_v wise_a man_n have_v so_o much_o talk_v of_o 17_o be_v it_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o temporal_a heaven_n at_o the_o best_a if_o spiritual_o examine_v 18_o moreover_o be_v it_o not_o a_o very_a unlikely_a matter_n that_o the_o infinite_a divinity_n majesty_n shall_v come_v again_o personal_o to_o remain_v upon_o this_o bloody_a earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n with_o his_o saint_n have_v suffer_v here_o already_o and_o ascend_v upon_o the_o throne_n or_o right_a hand_n of_o transcendent_a glory_n yea_o far_o above_o all_o heaven_n as_o it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n 19_o furthermore_n do_v not_o all_o personal_a
the_o divine_a majesty_n himself_o wherefore_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v also_o know_v that_o that_o gog_n and_o magog_n that_o be_v go_v forth_o to_o battle_n in_o the_o plain_n of_o the_o earth_n compass_v the_o tent_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o holy_a city_n be_v those_o heathenish_a magistrate_n and_o their_o bloody_a priest_n that_o proceed_v from_o curse_a cain_n through_o the_o loin_n of_o king_n herod_n and_o his_o priest_n and_o scribe_n as_o beforesaid_a so_o that_o the_o dead_a man_n that_o live_v not_o again_o until_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v fulfil_v be_v those_o saint_n and_o holy_a city_n of_o god_n which_o at_o this_o time_n and_o to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o time_n do_v suffer_v cruel_a persecution_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n in_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n 40_o my_o belove_a brethren_n this_o be_v that_o spiritual_a reign_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n with_o christ_n on_o this_o earth_n appoint_v in_o some_o measure_n for_o all_o man_n to_o drink_v which_o be_v deliver_v from_o that_o second_o death_n which_o be_v treasure_v up_o for_o all_o bloody_a mind_a tyrant_n whatsoever_o 41_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v sober_a may_v clear_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a personal_a reign_n of_o christ_n a_o thousand_o year_n with_o his_o saint_n on_o this_o earth_n that_o john_n aim_v at_o as_o many_o man_n have_v long_o imagine_v but_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a reign_n or_o suffer_v with_o he_o for_o his_o truth_n sake_n upon_o earth_n that_o when_o he_o appear_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o all_o his_o holy_a angel_n then_o to_o reign_v with_o he_o in_o his_o throne_n to_o all_o eternity_n in_o the_o three_o heaven_n 42_o now_o brethren_n i_o shall_v go_v on_o to_o prove_v his_o personal_a come_n in_o glory_n according_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a spirit_n from_o his_o own_o word_n chap._n xliii_o 1_o of_o the_o personal_a glory_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n 2_o no_o man_n have_v so_o much_o faith_n as_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n but_o christ_n only_o 3_o of_o spirit_n finite_a and_o infinite_a my_o belove_a brethren_n in_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n you_o may_v know_v there_o be_v a_o twofold_a appear_v of_o christ_n glory_n in_o his_o choose_a one_o as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n excel_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n so_o these_o two_o glory_n transcend_v each_o other_o 2_o moreover_o you_o know_v the_o moon_n appear_v in_o the_o brightness_n of_o her_o glory_n at_o one_o time_n and_o at_o another_o time_n she_o appear_v altogether_o like_a unto_o darkness_n or_o shame_n 3_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v with_o christ_n appear_v in_o glory_n to_o man_n soul_n in_o this_o life_n sometime_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o incomes_a of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n for_o a_o moment_n be_v transmute_v into_o the_o glorious_a likeness_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n himself_o 4_o but_o at_o another_o time_n you_o know_v when_o none_o of_o these_o spiritual_a lightning_n appear_v through_o some_o fleshly_a guilt_n the_o poor_a soul_n seem_v to_o be_v full_a of_o fearful_a darkness_n horror_n and_o shame_n as_o if_o it_o have_v never_o see_v any_o light_n or_o life_n at_o all_o 5_o so_o that_o you_o see_v all_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n appear_v unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n in_o this_o life_n be_v but_o a_o changeable_a moon-like_a glory_n at_o the_o best_a 6_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v but_o a_o spiritual_a type_n of_o this_o personal_a appear_v of_o christ_n in_o his_o judgement-seat_n glory_n with_o all_o his_o mighty_a angel_n 7_o again_o you_o know_v the_o sun_n be_v no_o way_n subject_a to_o change_v in_o the_o least_o but_o giantlike_a run_v his_o course_n in_o four_o and_o twenty_o hour_n through_o the_o whole_a heaven_n and_o in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o appear_v in_o his_o glory_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o all_o time_n 8_o so_o likewise_o you_o may_v know_v it_o be_v with_o this_o personal_a appear_v of_o christ_n in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o holy_a angel_n for_o in_o that_o day_n of_o his_o appear_v the_o person_n of_o his_o redeem_v once_o shall_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o sunshine_n like_o divine_a glory_n in_o themselves_o and_o so_o run_v their_o heavenly_a course_n even_o to_o all_o eternity_n 9_o who_o ever_o thou_o be_v that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o personal_a glory_n of_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n or_o air_n with_o his_o elect_a angel_n to_o make_v a_o eternal_a separation_n between_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a israelite_n and_o curse_a canaanite_n though_o thou_o be_v full_a of_o seem_v glorious_a expression_n concern_v a_o god_n or_o christ_n live_v in_o man_n conscience_n yet_o thou_o can_v never_o be_v firm_o establish_v until_o thou_o know_v that_o personal_a god_n or_o christ_n sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o infinite_a glory_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n without_o thou_o from_o whence_o alone_o all_o inward_a light_n or_o life_n proceed_v 10_o i_o confess_v if_o a_o man_n become_v a_o innocent_a merciful_a spirit_n he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o speak_v such_o a_o language_n from_o a_o suppose_a god_n or_o christ_n in_o man_n conscience_n only_o that_o may_v confound_v the_o seem_a holiness_n of_o all_o church_n fellowship_n in_o the_o world_n 11_o but_o what_o adunatage_n be_v this_o to_o himself_o or_o his_o heir_n except_o when_o he_o be_v confound_v in_o the_o room_n thereof_o he_o do_v not_o only_o declare_v the_o effect_n of_o christ_n truth_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v in_o some_o measure_n the_o personal_a appear_v of_o christ_n in_o his_o glory_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 12_o if_o the_o visible_a appear_v of_o a_o glorify_a god_n or_o christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o man_n be_v such_o a_o choak-pear_n unto_o thou_o or_o seem_v low_a or_o carnal_a because_o the_o national_a priest_n confess_v such_o a_o like_a thing_n 13_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o thou_o by_o sober_a speak_n or_o write_v where_o thy_o god_n or_o christ_n be_v become_v when_o thy_o soul_n and_o all_o thy_o light_n or_o life_n for_o a_o moment_n be_v become_v silent_a death_n or_o darkness_n with_o thy_o body_n of_o dust_n 14_o moreover_o if_o thou_o understand_v not_o a_o personal_a god_n or_o christ_n too_o transcendent_a glorious_a for_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n or_o man_n to_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwel_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n what_o be_v thy_o inward_a god_n or_o christ_n thou_o discourse_v so_o much_o about_o but_o pleasant_a word_n or_o perish_a nature_n only_o 15_o furthermore_o if_o thou_o know_v this_o wonderful_a secret_a concern_v what_o a_o spirit_n be_v then_o will_v thou_o certain_o know_v how_o impossible_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o any_o spirit_n whatsoever_o to_o possess_v a_o live_n be_v without_o a_o distinct_a body_n of_o his_o own_o 16_o again_o of_o what_o bigness_n do_v thou_o think_v a_o spirit_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v finite_a or_o infinite_a give_v i_o leave_v to_o write_v a_o little_a of_o this_o strange_a thing_n from_o those_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n by_o st._n matthew_n the_o word_n be_v these_o for_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o for_o if_o you_o have_v faith_n as_o much_o as_o be_v a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n you_o shall_v say_v unto_o this_o mountain_n remove_v hence_o to_o yonder_o place_n and_o it_o shall_v remove_v and_o nothing_o shall_v be_v unpossible_a unto_o you_o behold_v be_v not_o a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n a_o very_a little_a and_o yet_o you_o see_v christ_n say_v nothing_o shall_v be_v unpossible_a unto_o that_o man_n that_o have_v such_o a_o quantity_n of_o spiritual_a faith_n in_o he_o 17_o again_o it_o be_v write_v with_o god_n nothing_o shall_v be_v unpossible_a who_o then_o be_v capable_a to_o possess_v so_o much_o faith_n in_o he_o as_o will_v contain_v the_o quantity_n of_o a_o mustard_n seed_n but_o christ_n jesus_n the_o god_n of_o glory_n himself_o unto_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a that_o he_o be_v move_v unto_o by_o that_o seed_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o his_o glorify_a person_n 18_o moreover_o if_o a_o spirit_n be_v in_o its_o quantity_n but_o as_o a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n or_o a_o spark_n of_o fire_n how_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n man_n or_o angel_n to_o possess_v any_o sensible_a light_n life_n joy_n or_o glory_n but_o in_o their_o own_o body_n only_o 19_o furthermore_n if_o this_o description_n of_o a_o spirit_n seem_v strange_a be_v it_o know_v unto_o thou_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v i_o to_o declare_v it_o for_o the_o confound_a of_o that_o curse_a error_n
know_v the_o whole_a earth_n and_o all_o thing_n therein_o have_v a_o curse_n upon_o they_o in_o one_o kind_n or_o another_o 3_o furthermore_o you_o may_v know_v that_o this_o curse_n do_v in_o some_o measure_n extend_v unto_o the_o very_a soul_n and_o body_n of_o all_o creature_n with_o the_o whole_a world_n throughout_o 4_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o see_v the_o divine_a nature_n be_v all_o purity_n itself_o what_o be_v that_o curse_n upon_o the_o while_n creation_n or_o whence_o come_v it_o see_v they_o be_v uncapable_a of_o sin_n or_o evil_n in_o the_o least_o from_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o a_o infusion_n of_o any_o curse_n or_o evil_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o any_o thing_n by_o the_o creator_n but_o it_o be_v a_o withhold_v the_o motion_n of_o its_o first_o create_v blessedness_n through_o which_o natural_o it_o become_v barren_a or_o curse_a in_o itself_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o unlawful_a lust_n 5_o moreover_o that_o you_o may_v clear_o understand_v wherein_o the_o blessing_n or_o curse_v of_o the_o lord_n consist_v you_o may_v know_v that_o when_o he_o whole_o deny_v the_o heavenly_a motion_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o a_o man_n immediate_o that_o soul_n become_v nothing_o but_o curse_a envy_n against_o all_o spiritual_a or_o natural_a purity_n whatsoever_o 6_o so_o likewise_o when_o he_o deny_v the_o natural_a motion_n of_o his_o bless_a spirit_n unto_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v make_v it_o become_v subject_a to_o all_o kind_n of_o putrefaction_n whatsoever_o this_o be_v that_o curse_v of_o the_o jew_n natural_a blessing_n and_o harden_v of_o pharaoh_n heart_n by_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o in_o holy_a writ_n 7_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v sober_a may_v clear_o see_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o spiritual_a or_o natural_a curse_n in_o the_o whole_a creation_n for_o though_o it_o be_v pronounce_v through_o the_o spiritual_a mouth_n of_o the_o creator_n himself_o yet_o it_o can_v not_o possible_o proceed_v from_o that_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v because_o of_o the_o glorious_a purity_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o that_o curse_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o creature_n themselves_o for_o want_v of_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o they_o as_o beforesaid_a 8_o again_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a know_v that_o immediate_o after_o the_o lord_n say_v a_o end_n of_o all_o flesh_n be_v come_v before_o he_o when_o noah_n and_o his_o family_n and_o the_o creation_n be_v enter_v into_o the_o ark_n the_o whole_a world_n of_o lustful_a man_n and_o woman_n and_o the_o glory_n thereof_o be_v destroy_v by_o water_n now_o you_o know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o ark_n be_v secure_v from_o the_o rage_a water_n through_o their_o ascend_n above_o the_o water_n 9_o moreover_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o ark_n and_o those_o creature_n therein_o be_v not_o only_o preserve_v for_o the_o increase_n of_o a_o new_a world_n but_o they_o be_v also_o a_o figure_n of_o a_o world_n to_o come_v 10_o furthermore_o the_o ark_n itself_o have_v relation_n unto_o that_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n which_o be_v too_o sublime_a to_o be_v overtop_v by_o any_o natural_a water_n or_o sire_n whatsoever_o 11_o the_o person_n of_o noah_n who_o be_v make_v a_o preacher_n of_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n to_o the_o unbelieve_a world_n do_v represent_v the_o person_n of_o that_o spiritual_a preacher_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o heavenly_a ark_n beforesaid_a 12_o furthermore_o the_o other_o person_n and_o creature_n in_o the_o ark_n have_v reference_n unto_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a creation_n that_o be_v in_o be_v at_o the_o personal_a appear_v of_o christ_n in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n 13_o the_o drown_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o ungodly_a man_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o creation_n have_v relation_n unto_o the_o eternal_a condemnation_n of_o all_o reprobate_a man_n in_o this_o world_n 14_o the_o burn_a up_o of_o their_o natural_a delight_n wherewith_o they_o sport_v themselves_o in_o excess_n of_o riot_n and_o drunkenness_n little_o think_v of_o that_o eternal_a vengeance_n come_v upon_o they_o 15_o again_o righteous_a noah_n represent_v the_o divine_a judge_n of_o ungodly_a man_n in_o this_o because_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o great_a light_n in_o he_o he_o be_v make_v to_o sit_v as_o a_o judge_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o wicked_a man_n when_o the_o water_n rise_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o their_o laugh_v he_o to_o scorn_v about_o his_o ark_n and_o know_v his_o security_n in_o the_o ark_n and_o their_o present_a destruction_n by_o water_n have_v no_o ark_n of_o refuge_n to_o deliver_v they_o 16_o moreover_o as_o they_o sport_v themselves_o in_o fleshly_a filthiness_n and_o vain_a glorious_a mirth_n about_o he_o his_o ark_n pure_a language_n and_o life_n 17_o so_o likewise_o as_o a_o mighty_a prince_n in_o his_o chariot_n trample_v rebellious_a subject_n with_o delight_n under_o his_o horse_n heel_n he_o ride_v in_o his_o ark_n as_o in_o a_o chariot_n triumph_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o his_o own_o deliverance_n and_o their_o destruction_n under_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o ark_n as_o a_o just_a recompense_n of_o their_o unrighteous_a deed_n and_o despise_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v declare_v to_o they_o for_o a_o long_a season_n 18_o as_o sure_a as_o the_o lord_n live_v thus_o it_o will_v be_v very_o sudden_o with_o this_o lustful_a bloody_a world_n that_o sport_n themselves_o about_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o judgement_n day_n say_v it_o be_v pass_v already_o or_o there_o will_v never_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n for_o that_o righteous_a noah_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n will_v open_v the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o air_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n surround_v his_o person_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n speak_v as_o he_o raise_v lazarus_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n 19_o so_o likewise_o i_o affirm_v against_o man_n or_o angel_n the_o very_a same_o person_n and_o no_o other_o which_o do_v that_o deed_n be_v that_o god_n that_o will_v by_o his_o word_n speak_v command_v all_o his_o righteous_a noah_n both_o dead_a and_o alive_a bodily_a to_o a_o ascend_v into_o that_o holy_a ark_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o when_o they_o be_v safe_o arrive_v with_o the_o whole_a creation_n which_o according_a to_o their_o kind_n groan_v long_o for_o deliverance_n then_o as_o beforesaid_a that_o mighty_a god_n the_o man_n jesus_n in_o glory_n with_o a_o flood_n of_o fire_n will_v burn_v all_o the_o beauty_n or_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n to_o ash_n leave_v all_o curse_a canaanite_n body_n and_o spirit_n burn_v together_o like_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n upon_o this_o earth_n in_o utter_a darkness_n answerable_a unto_o their_o former_a burn_a lust_n in_o their_o natural_a condition_n 20_o moreover_o those_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o glory_n of_o a_o god_n or_o christ_n within_o they_o and_o what_o ever_o filthiness_n they_o act_n charge_v the_o most_o holy_a spirit_n with_o it_o i_o say_v from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n though_o they_o escape_v the_o vengeance_n of_o man_n by_o their_o satannical_a subtlety_n yet_o in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o their_o despising_n of_o a_o glory_n or_o misery_n to_o come_v in_o that_o day_n the_o divine_a vengeance_n shall_v burn_v more_o fiery_a hot_a in_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n than_o all_o other_o man_n whatsoever_o 21_o then_o those_o that_o be_v ascend_v into_o the_o ark_n of_o eternal_a glory_n with_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o his_o holy_a angel_n shall_v sing_v that_o new_a song_n of_o all_o honour_n power_n praise_n and_o glory_n unto_o the_o lamb_n that_o sit_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o not_o only_o because_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o eternal_a vengeance_n 22_o but_o also_o because_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o holy_a god_n have_v reward_v those_o filthy_a despiser_n of_o his_o glorious_a truth_n according_a to_o what_o they_o do_v and_o will_v have_v do_v unto_o christ_n and_o his_o redeem_a one_o 23_o o_o blessed_a be_v those_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o be_v not_o offend_v with_o these_o plain_a truth_n chap._n xlvi_o 1_o the_o last_o commissionated_a prophet_n come_v into_o the_o world_n 2_o no_o call_n of_o the_o natural_a jew_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a jesus_n 3_o two_o sort_n of_o jew_n 4_o some_o remarkable_a sign_n of_o the_o approach_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o dreadful_a day_n of_o christ_n personal_a appear_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o mighty_a
angel_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o may_v it_o not_o be_v a_o long_a season_n be_v there_o not_o many_o prophecy_n yet_o to_o be_v fulfil_v before_o his_o come_n as_o the_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n and_o such_o like_a 2_o from_o a_o unerring_a spirit_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v as_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v the_o last_o prophet_n under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o sudden_a appear_v of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n 3_o so_o likewise_o i_o positive_o affirm_v against_o all_o gainsayers_a under_o heaven_n that_o i_o john_n reeve_n be_o the_o last_o commissionated_a prophet_n that_o ever_o shall_v declare_v divine_a secret_n according_a to_o the_o foundation_n of_o truth_n until_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n appear_v on_o his_o throne_n of_o glory_n visible_o to_o be_v see_v by_o all_o his_o elect_a face_n to_o face_n 4_o but_o of_o the_o contrary_a in_o that_o day_n of_o our_o god_n and_o king_n of_o glorious_a crown_n appear_v none_o of_o those_o curse_a man_n and_o woman_n which_o blasphemous_o say_v that_o god_n have_v no_o person_n at_o all_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o behold_v his_o face_n and_o live_v but_o according_a to_o holy_a writ_n they_o shall_v cry_v to_o the_o mountain_n hill_n or_o rock_n to_o hide_v they_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o his_o bright_a burn_a body_n or_o face_n that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n 5_o concern_v a_o general_a visible_a call_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o all_o nation_n to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n i_o say_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o send_v i_o that_o there_o will_v never_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n indeed_o the_o ministerial_a artist_n have_v of_o a_o long_a season_n imagine_v a_o outward_a call_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o their_o vain_a glorious_a seem_a holiness_n but_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o holy_a god_n intend_v no_o such_o thing_n 6_o wherefore_o to_o confound_v their_o carnal_a wisdom_n his_o glorious_a purpose_n be_v to_o call_v home_o to_o himself_o those_o jew_n and_o gentile_n elect_v to_o everlasting_a life_n by_o the_o invisible_a teach_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a spirit_n 7_o you_o that_o be_v sober_a may_v come_v to_o understand_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o jew_n there_o be_v a_o moysaicall_a jew_n and_o a_o apostolical_a jew_n 8_o moreover_o you_o may_v know_v that_o those_o man_n call_v independent_o annabaptist_n presbyterian_o be_v the_o literal_a apostolical_a jew_n 9_o and_o those_o man_n that_o observe_v saturday_n for_o their_o sabbath_n be_v those_o moysaicall_a legal_a jew_n which_o utter_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v yet_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o ignorant_o expect_v his_o appear_v in_o a_o fleshly_a glorious_a manner_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o in_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n his_o father_n 10_o moreover_o these_o sabbattical_a saturday_n jew_n john_n tanee_n like_v do_v imagine_v when_o their_o fleshly_a christ_n appear_v to_o reign_v over_o they_o that_o he_o will_v gather_v they_o out_o of_o all_o nation_n wherein_o they_o be_v scatter_v and_o conduct_v they_o into_o the_o inheritance_n of_o their_o father_n that_o promise_v land_n of_o canaan_n and_o there_o they_o make_v account_n with_o their_o imaginary_a king_n to_o live_v in_o a_o temporal_a glorious_a condition_n for_o a_o long_a season_n and_o as_o they_o have_v be_v servant_n and_o slave_n to_o all_o nation_n wherein_o they_o be_v scatter_v so_o likewise_o as_o a_o reward_n of_o their_o servitude_n they_o full_o expect_v that_o all_o nation_n shall_v bow_v down_o to_o they_o and_o bring_v in_o their_o riches_n and_o glory_n unto_o they_o as_o their_o vassal_n for_o ever_o 11_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o these_o unbelieving_a moysaicall_a jew_n which_o expect_v a_o carnal_a christ_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o be_v those_o jew_n which_o at_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n say_v his_o blood_n be_v upon_o we_o and_o our_o child_n and_o true_o you_o know_v his_o blood_n be_v upon_o they_o and_o their_o child_n to_o some_o purpose_n in_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o unto_o this_o day_n yea_o and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n will_v never_o spiritual_o gather_v the_o seed_n of_o those_o jew_n which_o rate_v a_o bloody_a barabas_n above_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n himself_o 13_o moreover_o those_o jew_n which_o be_v afraid_a of_o have_v any_o hand_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o father_n of_o those_o spiritual_a jew_n in_o all_o nation_n that_o be_v mix_v in_o marriage_n with_o the_o gentile_n who_o merciful_a innocent_a spirit_n be_v deliver_v from_o all_o tyranny_n over_o man_n conscience_n 14_o furthermore_o those_o independent_a annabaptist_n presbyterian_a man_n which_o hold_v it_o lawful_a just_a and_o good_a to_o persecute_v man_n in_o their_o person_n and_o estate_n upon_o a_o spiritual_a account_n i_o say_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o offspring_n of_o those_o bloody-minded_a jew_n that_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o blasphemy_n as_o beforesaid_a 15_o o_o bless_a be_v all_o unpersecute_a merciful_a mind_a man_n and_o woman_n only_o 16_o all_o innocent_a merciful_a independent_a annabaptist_n presbyterian_a man_n or_o woman_n that_o be_v preserve_v from_o a_o persecute_v mind_n of_o divine_a thing_n which_o seem_v difficult_a from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n i_o declare_v those_o be_v part_n of_o god_n spiritual_a wheat_n which_o be_v mix_v with_o the_o chaffy_a jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o curse_a cain_n who_o the_o lord_n shall_v burn_v with_o unquenchable_a fire_n when_o he_o come_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o angel_n to_o receive_v his_o spiritual_a wheat_n into_o his_o heavenly_a barn_n as_o aforesaid_a 17_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a may_v clear_o see_v that_o the_o call_n of_o the_o elect_a jew_n in_o all_o nation_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o his_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v not_o mean_v a_o outward_a call_n of_o they_o from_o a_o moysaicall_a legallity_n unto_o a_o apostolical_a literallity_n as_o many_o man_n have_v vain_o imagine_v but_o it_o be_v a_o inward_a call_n of_o they_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o one_o personal_a majesty_n on_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n and_o his_o heavenly_a truth_n 18_o again_o concern_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n in_o the_o 24._o of_o matthew_n and_o the_o 30._o it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n and_o then_o shall_v all_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n mourn_v and_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n this_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v that_o substance_n or_o very_a son_n of_o man_n himself_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o personal_a appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o his_o glitter_a angel_n cause_v such_o a_o fiery_a brightness_n not_o only_o in_o the_o visible_a heaven_n above_o but_o the_o whole_a earth_n beneath_o also_o appear_v like_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n or_o burn_a lightning_n insomuch_o that_o all_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o never_o expect_v that_o dreadful_a day_n because_o their_o person_n be_v not_o transmute_v into_o the_o divine_a likeness_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man._n 19_o therefore_o their_o unbelieving_a earthly_a spirit_n do_v quake_v and_o tremble_v lament_v and_o howl_v like_o dog_n for_o very_a fear_n of_o the_o foresay_a sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v rend_v they_o to_o piece_n and_o burn_v they_o and_o their_o inward_a god_n or_o christ_n to_o powder_n i_o mean_v all_o those_o which_o glory_v of_o a_o god_n or_o christ_n within_o they_o only_o and_o curse_o despise_v this_o personal_a god_n on_o his_o glorious_a throne_n without_o they_o 20_o thus_o you_o in_o who_o person_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n reign_v by_o the_o heavenly_a income_n of_o his_o eternal_a brightness_n may_v in_o some_o measure_n see_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n when_o he_o appear_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o holy_a angel_n 21_o as_o the_o immortalize_v spirit_n and_o body_n be_v fill_v with_o astonish_a ravishment_n with_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o his_o glorious_a throne_n aforesaid_a 22_o so_o likewise_o the_o carnal_a spirit_n and_o body_n of_o all_o hypocrite_n which_o glory_v in_o a_o christ_n ordinance_n
exalt_v thyself_o above_o thy_o creator_n by_o conceit_v thyself_o in_o a_o throne_n of_o glory_n with_o christ_n already_o 26_o moreover_o be_v thou_o never_o so_o seem_o holy_a or_o charitable_a or_o a_o great_a sufferer_n in_o reference_n to_o thy_o inward_a god_n or_o christ_n yet_o if_o thou_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o pride_n of_o thy_o own_o spirit_n to_o despise_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n glorify_v in_o the_o high_a heaven_n thou_o and_o all_o that_o be_v within_o thou_o will_v eternal_o perish_v 27_o so_o much_o do_v the_o man_n jesus_n in_o glory_n heed_v thou_o and_o all_o of_o thy_o blasphemous_a lofty_a spirit_n he_o that_o deny_v i_o before_o man_n he_o will_v i_o deny_v before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o his_o holy_a angel_n chap._n xlviii_o 1_o of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n 2_o and_o what_o it_o be_v by_o several_a question_n and_o answer_n in_o the_o next_o place_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o write_v a_o little_a of_o the_o new_a birth_n or_o first_o resurrection_n from_o a_o glorify_a christ_n 2_o what_o be_v this_o first_o resurrection_n that_o who_o ever_o have_v part_n in_o it_o be_v bless_v and_o holy_a and_o the_o second_o death_n have_v no_o power_n true_o it_o be_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o a_o divine_a light_n in_o the_o understanding_n which_o a_o man_n have_v receive_v by_o inspiration_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o personal_a christ_n on_o a_o throne_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o three_o heaven_n 3_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n true_o know_v whether_o he_o have_v this_o light_n in_o he_o or_o no_o or_o when_o he_o receive_v it_o he_o that_o have_v this_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o he_o his_o very_a thought_n desire_n and_o affection_n be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o it_o whole_o bend_v upon_o all_o spiritual_a and_o natural_a purity_n whatsoever_o 4_o so_o that_o the_o scripture_n impute_v justice_n righteousness_n holiness_n or_o perfection_n unto_o that_o man_n only_o which_o have_v this_o light_n in_o he_o because_o he_o be_v principal_o guide_v by_o a_o light_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o glorious_a god_n of_o all_o divine_a perfection_n without_o he_o 5_o moreover_o this_o light_n of_o christ_n sometime_o be_v know_v by_o a_o glorious_a voice_n to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o ear_n through_o which_o a_o man_n be_v so_o full_a of_o inward_a joy_n glory_n or_o majesty_n in_o himself_o that_o he_o know_v not_o for_o that_o present_a whether_o he_o be_v in_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o god_n or_o a_o man_n this_o i_o certain_o know_v yet_o i_o believe_v few_o of_o the_o saint_n themselves_o have_v taste_v of_o this_o condition_n 6_o furthermore_o this_o light_n of_o christ_n convey_v itself_o so_o secret_o into_o the_o understanding_n of_o most_o of_o his_o redeem_a one_o by_o a_o low_a voice_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a spirit_n that_o oftentimes_o they_o know_v not_o the_o time_n thereof_o only_o after_o this_o light_n of_o life_n have_v once_o appear_v the_o soul_n be_v so_o delight_v with_o it_o that_o it_o think_v it_o can_v never_o have_v too_o much_o of_o it_o or_o hardly_o enough_o of_o it_o therefore_o like_o a_o woman_n in_o travail_n it_o be_v full_a of_o hunger_a or_o thirst_v after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o fountain_n of_o glory_n from_o whence_o its_o light_n and_o joy_n proceed_v 7_o again_o he_o that_o have_v this_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o he_o be_v not_o only_o full_a of_o long_n after_o more_o of_o it_o but_o his_o soul_n be_v also_o full_a of_o that_o new_a song_n of_o praise_n honour_n power_n and_o glory_n unto_o the_o infinite_a unknown_a god_n until_o he_o do_v in_o some_o measure_n true_o know_v he_o 8_o moreover_o he_o that_o have_v this_o new_a and_o true_a light_n be_v not_o rash_a in_o judge_v divine_a thing_n he_o know_v not_o but_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o light_n of_o life_n he_o be_v preserve_v with_o a_o meek_a and_o patient_a spirit_n to_o wait_v the_o lord_n leisure_n for_o manifest_v the_o truth_n thereof_o 9_o furthermore_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v this_o white_a stone_n or_o new_a name_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o purpose_n see_v all_o the_o speaking_n or_o write_n of_o non-commissionated_n man_n but_o mere_a literal_a or_o notional_a emptiness_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o joy_n or_o glory_n that_o he_o possess_v from_o the_o invisible_a motion_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n himself_o 10_o again_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o light_n he_o be_v make_v able_a to_o discern_v whether_o man_n speak_v or_o write_n proceed_v from_o a_o literal_a notional_a or_o spiritual_a christ_n or_o no._n 11_o moreover_o he_o that_o have_v this_o light_n of_o christ_n thus_o ground_v in_o he_o do_v not_o lie_v dote_v upon_o man_n invisible_a god_n christ_n spirit_n light_z life_n love_n joy_n beauty_n virtue_n power_n or_o glory_n of_o mere_a word_n only_o but_o nothing_o will_v satisfy_v his_o newborn_a hungry_a spirit_n but_o a_o divine_a embrace_v of_o a_o personal_a god_n of_o spiritual_a substance_n yea_o too_o transcendent_o glorious_a for_o man_n or_o angel_n to_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwelling_a of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n but_o of_o the_o in-shining_a virtue_n or_o motion_n only_o 12_o so_o much_o at_o present_a concern_v the_o first_o resurrection_n or_o new_a birth_n from_o a_o personal_a substantial_a god_n or_o christ_n on_o the_o throne_n of_o eternity_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n in_o opposition_n of_o a_o suppose_a new_a birth_n from_o a_o notional_a inward_a christ_n or_o literal_a outward_a christ_n only_o chap._n xlix_o 1_o concern_v god_n become_v a_o child_n 2_o none_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v their_o being_n in_o god_n but_o the_o seed_n of_o faith_n 3_o no_o creature_n capable_a to_o be_v essential_o one_o with_o god_n again_o it_o be_v write_v in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v also_o it_o be_v write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n what_o do_v the_o apostle_n mean_v by_o live_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n or_o how_o can_v a_o man_n be_v say_v to_o live_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n also_o 2_o my_o spiritual_a friend_n though_o all_o man_n have_v their_o life_n or_o be_v in_o the_o creator_n or_o in_o this_o power_n by_o virtue_n of_o creation_n yet_o none_o but_o the_o elect_a do_v spiritual_o live_v move_v or_o have_v any_o be_v in_o he_o and_o that_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o redemption_n only_o and_o that_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o prophet_n say_v for_o unto_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v now_o you_o know_v that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v they_o word_n long_o after_o the_o birth_n of_o that_o glorious_a babe_n and_o yet_o you_o see_v that_o all_o his_o joy_n or_o glory_n in_o reference_n to_o a_o life_n to_o come_v be_v fix_v only_o in_o the_o person_n of_o that_o child_n 3_o thus_o the_o prophet_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o true_a jesus_n in_o he_o do_v spiritual_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v his_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n in_o a_o full_a assurance_n that_o god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n and_o creator_n of_o both_o world_n and_o all_o in_o they_o will_v become_v a_o little_a child_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o his_o elect_a from_o eternal_a death_n by_o pour_v forth_o of_o his_o most_o precious_a life_n it_o be_v writ_v who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n or_o unto_o who_o be_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n reveal_v 4_o thus_o you_o may_v see_v that_o those_o man_n which_o want_v the_o light_n of_o life_n in_o they_o to_o receive_v that_o prophetical_a report_n concern_v the_o god_n of_o glory_n be_v come_v by_o the_o outstretch_v arm_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n to_o redeem_v the_o elect_a world_n to_o himself_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o prophet_n spiritual_o live_v move_a or_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n 5_o so_o likewise_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n paul_n meaning_n also_o when_o he_o say_v for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o he_o for_o the_o life_n which_o i_o now_o live_v be_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o also_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v to_o this_o effect_n that_o some_o man_n do_v live_v without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o reprobate_a man_n be_v account_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o live_v and_o to_o die_v in_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o rise_v again_o very_a devil_n in_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o all_o eternity_n 6_o the_o choose_v of_o god_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o true_a light_n or_o love_n of_o
god_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n only_o with_o all_o their_o rebellion_n against_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o dreadful_a judge_n sit_v in_o their_o fleshly_a conscience_n with_o a_o echo_n of_o everlasting_a torment_n in_o utter_a darkness_n 6_o thus_o in_o some_o measure_n i_o have_v be_v make_v to_o declare_v unto_o my_o spiritual_a yea_o and_o fleshly_a brethren_n also_o the_o sudden_a glorious_a and_o dreadful_a appear_v of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o mighty_a god-man_n sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o elect_a angel_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a according_a to_o his_o own_o say_n in_o holy_a writ_n 7_o and_o now_o as_o a_o conclusion_n unto_o this_o epistle_n i_o shall_v speak_v a_o few_o word_n to_o all_o that_o may_v peruse_v it_o in_o the_o name_n and_o power_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n by_o who_o most_o bless_a spirit_n i_o be_v inspire_o move_v to_o write_v it_o 8_o my_o belove_a brethren_n that_o have_v the_o least_o hope_n in_o you_o of_o a_o glory_n to_o come_v i_o confess_v through_o unusualness_n of_o such_o a_o language_n many_o say_n in_o this_o book_n may_v seem_v to_o your_o reason_n very_o absurd_a at_o the_o first_o 9_o but_o if_o the_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a qualify_v you_o with_o a_o meek_a and_o patient_a spirit_n they_o may_v be_v as_o plain_a and_o easy_a to_o your_o understanding_n at_o the_o last_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v they_o to_o i_o his_o poor_a despise_a messenger_n 10_o i_o know_v if_o i_o be_v a_o university_n man_n possess_v perish_a wealth_n or_o honour_n among_o prince_n your_o rational_a spirit_n will_v be_v as_o subject_a to_o err_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n as_o now_o they_o be_v on_o ●he_v leave_v 11_o o_o forget_v not_o that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n see_v it_o most_o advantageous_a for_o his_o glory_n to_o choose_v base_a and_o despise_a thing_n to_o confound_v the_o honourable_a and_o eloquent_a thing_n of_o this_o vain_a glorious_a world_n 12_o again_o if_o some_o man_n shall_v say_v unto_o i_o that_o i_o have_v write_v many_o say_n without_o book_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o angel_n and_o such_o like_a i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o they_o whether_o moses_n have_v any_o book_n by_o he_o when_o he_o write_v of_o the_o creation_n of_o this_o world_n and_o the_o thing_n therein_o 13_o though_o the_o holy_a prophet_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n alude_v sometime_o to_o the_o former_a prophetical_a writing_n to_o convince_v gainsayers_a yet_o you_o know_v they_o speak_v by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n only_o according_a to_o that_o say_n in_o holy_a writ_n all_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n and_o holy_a man_n of_o old_a speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 14_o moreover_o if_o you_o shall_v ask_v i_o how_o shall_v you_o know_v whether_o i_o write_v by_o true_a inspiration_n or_o no_o as_o to_o that_o if_o you_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n no_o man_n can_v deceive_v you_o 15_o furthermore_o unless_o you_o have_v a_o light_n in_o you_o that_o can_v clear_o convince_v i_o of_o error_n in_o my_o epistle_n in_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o my_o writing_n you_o also_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o holy_a writ_n 16_o if_o i_o shall_v write_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v exact_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n i_o shall_v then_o write_v nothing_o at_o all_o because_o they_o be_v other_o man_n work_n and_o you_o have_v they_o already_o beside_o many_o eloquent_a man_n to_o play_v upon_o the_o harp_n of_o those_o record_n very_o harmonious_o unto_o your_o carnal_a ear_n which_o godliness_n of_o they_o be_v very_o gainful_a unto_o many_o of_o they_o as_o you_o well_o know_v 17_o if_o i_o shall_v write_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v record_v in_o holy_a writ_n there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o other_o witness_n to_o prove_v i_o a_o liar_n but_o my_o book_n only_o and_o so_o i_o shall_v be_v bind_v together_o in_o a_o bundle_n of_o literal_a tare_n and_o burn_v with_o unquenchable_a fire_n at_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o his_o glory_n with_o h●s_n mighty_a angel_n because_o i_o have_v declare_v myself_o send_v forth_o by_o voice_n from_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n himself_o to_o demonstrate_v some_o secret_n to_o his_o choose_a one_o that_o have_v not_o be_v reveal_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v 18_o and_o now_o i_o desire_v no_o other_o witness_n to_o bear_v record_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n to_o this_o epistle_n whether_o it_o be_v truth_n or_o no_o but_o the_o everliving_a jehovah_n or_o eternal_a spiritual_a jesus_n himself_o with_o all_o his_o holy_a angel_n even_o so_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o amen_o amen_n john_n reeve_n and_o lodowick_n muggleton_n the_o two_o last_o immediate_a commissionated_a witness_n or_o prophet_n by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o the_o man_n jesus_n glorify_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o eternity_n which_o be_v far_o above_o all_o god_n heaven_n angel_n and_o men._n finis_fw-la